2018_The ghost cities of Australia

Page 1

The Ghost Cities of Australia

A

Survey of New City Proposals and Their Lessons for Australia’s 21st Century Development

SPRINGER BRIEFS IN GEOGRAPHY

SpringerBriefsinGeography

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

SpringerBriefsinGeographypresentsconcisesummariesofcutting-edgeresearch andpracticalapplicationsacrossthe fieldsofphysical,environmentalandhuman geography.Itpublishescompactrefereedmonographsundertheeditorialsupervisionofaninternationaladvisoryboardwiththeaimtopublish8to12weeksafter acceptance.Volumesarecompact,50to125pages,withaclearfocus.Theseries coversarangeofcontentfromprofessionaltoacademicsuchas:timelyreportsof state-of-theartanalyticaltechniques,bridgesbetweennewresearchresults, snapshotsofhotand/oremergingtopics,elaboratedthesis,literaturereviews,and in-depthcasestudies.

Thescopeoftheseriesspanstheentire fieldofgeography,withaviewto signifi cantlyadvanceresearch.Thecharacteroftheseriesisinternationaland multidisciplinaryandwillincluderesearchareassuchas:GIS/cartography,remote sensing,geographicaleducation,geospatialanalysis,techniquesandmodeling, landscape/regionalandurbanplanning,economicgeography,housingandthebuilt environment,andquantitativegeography.Volumesinthisseriesmayanalyzepast, presentand/orfuturetrends,aswellastheirdeterminantsandconsequences.Both solicitedandunsolicitedmanuscriptsareconsideredforpublicationinthisseries.

SpringerBriefsinGeographywillbeofinteresttoawiderangeofindividuals withinterestsinphysical,environmentalandhumangeographyaswellasfor researchersfromallieddisciplines.

Moreinformationaboutthisseriesathttp://www.springer.com/series/10050

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

JulianBolleter

TheGhostCitiesofAustralia ASurveyofNewCityProposalsandTheir LessonsforAustralia’s21stCentury Development 123 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

JulianBolleter

AustralianUrbanDesignResearchCentre

UniversityofWesternAustralia

Perth,WA

Australia

ISSN2211-4165ISSN2211-4173(electronic) SpringerBriefsinGeography

ISBN978-3-319-89895-7ISBN978-3-319-89896-4(eBook) https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-319-89896-4

LibraryofCongressControlNumber:2018938641

Everyefforthasbeenmadetocontactthecopyrightholdersofthe figuresandtableswhichhavebeen reproducedfromothersources.Anyonewhohasnotbeenproperlycreditedisrequestedtocontactthe publishers,sothatdueacknowledgmentmaybemadeinsubsequenteditions.

© TheAuthor(s)2018

Thisworkissubjecttocopyright.AllrightsarereservedbythePublisher,whetherthewholeorpart ofthematerialisconcerned,specificallytherightsoftranslation,reprinting,reuseofillustrations, recitation,broadcasting,reproductiononmicrofilmsorinanyotherphysicalway,andtransmission orinformationstorageandretrieval,electronicadaptation,computersoftware,orbysimilarordissimilar methodologynowknownorhereafterdeveloped.

Theuseofgeneraldescriptivenames,registerednames,trademarks,servicemarks,etc.inthis publicationdoesnotimply,evenintheabsenceofaspecificstatement,thatsuchnamesareexemptfrom therelevantprotectivelawsandregulationsandthereforefreeforgeneraluse.

Thepublisher,theauthorsandtheeditorsaresafetoassumethattheadviceandinformationinthis bookarebelievedtobetrueandaccurateatthedateofpublication.Neitherthepublishernorthe authorsortheeditorsgiveawarranty,expressorimplied,withrespecttothematerialcontainedhereinor foranyerrorsoromissionsthatmayhavebeenmade.Thepublisherremainsneutralwithregardto jurisdictionalclaimsinpublishedmapsandinstitutionalaffiliations.

Disclaimer Thefactsandopinionsexpressedinthisworkarethoseoftheauthor(s)andnotnecessarily thoseofthepublisher.

Printedonacid-freepaper

ThisSpringerimprintispublishedbytheregisteredcompanySpringerInternationalPublishingAG partofSpringerNature

Theregisteredcompanyaddressis:Gewerbestrasse11,6330Cham,Switzerland

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Thisbookisformyfather,RossBolleter Forthelonglunches

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Preface

Myjourneytothe “ghostcities” beganin2012whenRichardWellergenerously includedmeinaresearchproject,thatledtothebook MadeinAustralia:thefuture ofAustraliancities.Thisresearchscopedthetwenty- firstcenturyperiod,and exploredthepotentialofnewcitiestoabsorbtheprojectedtreblingofAustralia’s populationbytheendofthecentury.Theplanningcommunityandlayreadersalike receivedthebookwarmly;however,inthecourseofmanypresentationsofthe book,IbecameincreasinglyawareofmyownignoranceofearlierAustraliannew cityventures.

Toaddressthislacuna,inearly2016,Ibegantodelveintotheliteratureonthis subject.Ofparticularimportance,wasRobertFreestone’ssubstantialresearch, whichintroducedmetoAustraliannewcitydreamerssuchasEdwardBrady, WilliamHat field,IonIdriess,andGoughWhitlam pivotal figuresaroundwhich thisghostcitiesbookwasborn.

Thisbookaimstoprovideanadequate “runup” totheexerciseofnewcity buildinginAustraliainthetwenty-firstcentury somethingthatextremepopulationgrowthprojectionsindicatewillbenecessary.Myhopeisthat,throughthis book,Australia’shistoryofoften-futilenewcityventureswillproviderichcompost outofwhichbetter-informedpropositionscantakerootinthefuture.

Perth,AustraliaJulianBolleter 2018

vii julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Acknowledgements

Iwouldliketothankthereviewersofthisbook,CraigBurton,BillGrace,and AllanDale,fortheircrucialcontributionstoitscontent.ThankyoualsotoRobert FreestoneforhisscholarshipinrelationtoAustraliancities,asignificantbodyof workfromwhichthisbookdrawsheavily.ThankstoDavidNicholsformy inclusiononarelatedfundingapplication.ThankyoutoRichardWellerforthe opportunitytocontributetoapreviousbook MadeinAustralia,whichstartedthe journeytothe “ghostcities.” Thankstomypastandpresentcolleaguesatthe AustralianUrbanDesignResearchCentre(AUDRC)JoergBaumeister,Anthony Duckworth-Smith,ChrisMelsom,ZoeMyers,GraceOliver,andDanielaOttmann fortheirsupport,andtoJillPenterforhergenerousoffertodoaninitialcopyedit ofthebook.GratitudeisduetotheAUDRCadvisoryboardandtoourfunding partners,theDepartmentofCommunities,theDepartmentofPlanning,Landsand Heritage,theWesternAustralianPlanningCommission,andLandcorp.Thanksalso toPetravanSteenbergen,executiveeditoratSpringer,forhereffi ciencyand encouragement.Thankyoutomymother,GlenysDavies,forhersteadfastsupport overtheyears.Finally,thankstothewonderfulRoseBolleterforherlovelyartwork onearlierdraftsofthebook,andtomytalentedwifeSallyAppletonforenabling thisprojectonthehomefront.

ix julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au
Contents 1Introduction 1 1.1NewCities 1 1.1.1NewCityBuildinginAustralia 2 1.2Method 4 1.2.1ScopeandTerminology 6 References 7 2CreatingaRuralCivilization .............................. 9 2.1Creatinga “RuralCivilization” .......................... 9 2.2TheCaseforaRuralCivilization ........................ 10 2.2.1AVastRuralBounty ............................ 10 2.2.2ThePathologiesoftheCapitalCities ................ 11 2.2.3TheIdealRuralCitizenry ......................... 12 2.2.4PopulateorPerish .............................. 13 2.3TheGhostCitiesofaRuralCivilization ................... 13 2.3.1TheGardenCityModel 14 2.3.2GardenCityPropositions 14 2.3.3Brady’sMallacoota 15
field’sInteriorCities 17
’ InteriorRailwayCities 20 2.3.6Idriess’ InteriorLakeCities 23 2.4TheResultsofAttemptstoForgeaRuralCivilization 25 2.4.1LandDegradation 25 2.4.2AContinuedDrifttotheCapitalCities ............... 25 2.5KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNewCities(1901–1945) .......... 26 2.5.1OverestimatedPopulation-CarryingCapacity ........... 26
......................... 26 xi julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au
2.3.4Hat
2.3.5Idriess
2.5.2TheTyrannyofDistance

3.3.1Albury

27 2.5.4TheLivabilityofCoastalCities 27 2.6Conclusion 29 References 29 3DecentralizationFever ................................... 33 3.1TheCaseforDecentralization ........................... 33
................ 34 3.1.2PopulationOverconcentration ...................... 35
....................... 35 3.1.4Pathologies ................................... 36 3.1.5Congestion ................................... 37 3.1.6SocietalSegmentation ........................... 37 3.1.7VulnerabilityinWar ............................ 37 3.2DecentralizationastheAnswertoCitiesinCrisis 38 3.2.1TheExemplarofCanberra 39 3.3TheDURD’sGhostCitiesofDecentralization 39
2.5.3ImportedCityModels
3.1.1AnUrbanCrisisintheCapitalCities
3.1.3DeterioratingEnvironments
–Wodonga 40 3.3.2Monarto 43 3.4StateGovernment-NetworkedCitiesintheNorthwest 46 3.4.1ParadiseWell 48 3.4.2ShayGap 49 3.5TheResultsofDecentralizationFever ..................... 50 3.6KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNeworBoostedCities (1970–1975) ........................................ 52
........................... 52 3.6.2TheContinuedLivabilityoftheStateCapitalCities ..... 53 3.6.3CompetitionfromOtherTownsandCities ............ 54 3.6.4CentralizingEconomicForces ..................... 55 3.6.5UncoordinatedFederal-andState-LevelPlanning ....... 56 3.7Conclusion ......................................... 56 References 57 4NewNorthernCities 59 4.1ANorthernInitiation 59 4.2NeworBoostedCitiesintheNorth 61 4.3CapitalCities 62 4.3.1AustralianNorthernEcoCity 63 4.4CharterCities 65 4.4.1Galt’sGulchLite 65 4.4.2Dilga 68 4.4.3RefugeCity ................................... 70 xii Contents julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au
3.6.1PsychologicalHurdles

5BarrierstoNewNorthernCities

6RelearningLessons

4.5MiningCities 72 4.5.1Karratha “CityoftheNorth” 74 4.5.2RebrandingKarratha 75 4.5.3Karratha ’sProgress 79 4.6LifestyleCities 80
................. 81 4.6.2BoomBoomBroome ............................ 81 4.6.3LordMcAlpine’sBroome ........................ 83 4.7SatelliteCities ...................................... 84 4.7.1Weddell ..................................... 84 4.7.2WeddellWorries ............................... 85 4.8Conclusion ......................................... 86 References ............................................. 86
4.6.1TheGoldCoastandSunshineCoast
91 5.1GeneralBarrierstoDevelopingNewCitiesintheNorth 91 5.2EnvironmentalBarriers 92
92 5.2.2CarryingCapacityandClimateChange 94 5.3EconomicBarriers 96 5.3.1TheExpenseofProvidingInfrastructure 96 5.3.2ALackofCompellingEconomicDrivers(andJobs) 97 5.3.3SpecialEconomicZonesandtheConstitution .......... 99 5.4SocietalBarriers ..................................... 100 5.4.1TheLivabilityofNewNorthernCities ............... 100 5.4.2ALackofSupportforForeignInvestmentand Immigration ................................... 102
........... 103
....... 104 5.5GovernanceBarriers .................................. 105 5.5.1FragmentedandShort-TermPlanning ................ 105 5.6Conclusion 107 References 107
5.2.1CarryingCapacityLimitations
5.4.3PotentialResistancefromExistingResidents
5.4.4PotentialResistancefromIndigenousLandholders
111 6.1ASummationoftheBarriers 111 6.2TheNeedforaVision 113 6.2.1ListentotheLand,ListentothePeople 114 6.3Conclusion 116 References 116 Contents xiii julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

AbouttheAuthor

Dr.JulianBolleter istheDeputyDirectorofthe AustralianUrbanDesignResearchCentre(AUDRC) attheUniversityofWesternAustralia.Hisroleatthe AUDRCincludesteachingamaster ’sprogramin urbandesignandconductingurbandesign-related researchanddesignprojects.HehascompletedaPh.D. onDubai’surbandevelopment(whichwillbepublishedinlate2018)andhascommerciallypublished threeotherbooksincluding MadeinAustralia:The FutureofAustralianCities (withRichardWeller), TakeMetotheRiver:AHistoryofPerth’sForeshore and ScavengingtheSuburbs:AuditingPerthfor 1MillionInfillDwellings

xv julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Chapter1 Introduction

Abstract TherehavebeenaslewofnewcitypropositionsinAustraliasince Federationin1901;however,mostofthesehavefailedtomaterialize.Thischapter providesaverybriefoverviewoftheargumentsforbuildingnewcitiesinAustralia. Principally,theserelatetoprojectionsforextremepopulationgrowthandassessmentsthatthereisanoverconcentrationofpeopleintheexistingcapitalcities.The chapteralsobrieflyintroducesthedominantbarriers whicharebothpragmatic andpsychological thatnewcityproposalshaveencountered.Finally,thischapter setsoutthemethod,structure,andterminologyofthebook.

Keywords Australia Newcities Settlementpatterns

1.1NewCities

Weliveonarapidlyurbanizingplanet.In2008,demographersannouncedthat morethan50%ofhumanswerelivingincities.Thissymbolizedaprofoundchange inhumanhistory,asneverbeforehadamajorityoftheworld’spopulationlivedin urbanizedareas(McNeillandEngelke 2016).Thistrendisprojectedtocontinue withhighprobabilityforecastsfor1,200,000km2 ofnewurbanizedareaglobally by2030(Setoetal. 2012).Someofthisurbanizationistakingtheformofplanned newcities.Indeed,itisestimatedthattherearejustoverathousandplannednew citiesaroundtheworld(MiklianandHoelscher 2014),inparticularincountriesin Asia,Africa,andLatinAmerica.Indiaaloneplanstobuild100newcitieswith 1,000,000peopleineachby2020(Mannion 2014).

Academicshavegeneratedcomparativelylittlescholarship empiricalortheoretical exploringthistrenddespitethemultitudeofnewcitiesbeingplannedand constructedaroundtheworld(Moser 2015).Thisisparticularlythecasein Australiawhereresearchonnewcitydevelopmenthastendedtoorbitaroundthe exampleofCanberra,Australia’splanned “new” capitalcitydesignedintheearly twentiethcentury.

© TheAuthor(s)2018

J.Bolleter, TheGhostCitiesofAustralia,SpringerBriefsinGeography, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-319-89896-4_1

1 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Whiletomostpeople’smindsCanberraisthemostrecent “new” cityproposed, inAustralia,therehasinfactbeenamultitudeofnewcitiesventuredsincethe FederationofAustraliain1901.However,mostofthesehavefailedtomaterialize. Theseinclude inthemid-twentiethcentury EdwardBrady’splanforan AustralianGardenCityinMallacootainVictoriathatwastoserveasamodelfor theentireeasternseaboard’sdevelopment(BradyandRubinstein 1944)andIon Idriess’ plantoreengineerthehydrologyofinlandAustraliatoenablecitiesaround LakeEyreinSouthAustralia(Idriess 1944).Inthe1970s,thethenprimeminister GoughWhitlamenvisioned “manymorethan fivenewCanberrasdistributedacross ourgreatcontinent” by2000(Freestone 2013)andinthiscentury,theattempted recastingof “jerry-built” miningtownsas “PilbaraCities” inWesternAustralia’s Pilbararegion(BolleterandWeller 2013,p.31).Thisbookwillexplorethesenew cities,amongnumerousotherexamples.

1.1.1NewCityBuildinginAustralia

SuchnewcityproposalsinAustraliatypicallyembodytwonarratives.First,since Australia’sEuropeancolonization,therehavebeeninflatedestimationsof Australia’sfuturepopulation,whichhasunderscoredtheapparentneedfornewcity buildingand “closersettlement”1 moregenerally.Onthe1888centenaryofthe arrivaloftheFirstFleetinSydney,acorrespondentforthe Spectator newspaper notedthat, “Thereiseveryreasonableprobabilitythatin1988Australiawillbea FederalRepublic,peopledby50,000,000Englishspeakingmen”2 (presumablya bareminimumofwomenandchildrentoo!)(InSouthphommasane 2012). Subsequently,othershaveambitiouslypitchedAustralia’scarryingcapacityas beingashighas500,000,000(InCathcart 2010) aprojectionmadejustafterthe FirstWorldWar dwarfingAustralia’scurrentpopulationof25,000,000bya factorof20!TheAustralianBureauofStatistics(2013)currentlyprojectsthat Australia’spopulationwilldoubleto42,400,000by2060,andtripleto70,100,000 by2101.3 Theseprojections,iftakenseriously,implythatAustraliawillneedto buildanurbanareaequivalenttoalmost132Canberrasinthenexteightdecadesto accommodatepopulationgrowth.

Second,Australia’spopulationisdefinedbyanunusuallydistinctivepatternof “metropolitandominance”—asituationthatAmericaneconomistAdnaWeber describedas “aremarkableconcentration” (InFreestone 2013).Australiaremains oneofthemosturbanizednationsintheworld,withmorethan60%ofits

1“Closersettlement” referstotheestablishmentofproductiveagriculturalcommunitiesbydividing largetractsofpastorallandintosmallplots.

2Quotationshavebeeneditedforspellingandpunctuation.

3Theseare “seriesA” projectionsandarethehighestofthethreesetsofprojectionstheAustralian BureauofStatisticsproduces.

2 1Introduction julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.1.1 Australia’spopulationdensitypersquarekilometer:Thismaprevealstheremarkable concentrationofAustralia’spopulationwithinthedominantcapitalcitiesofPerth,Adelaide, Melbourne,Sydney,BrisbaneandHobart(AustralianBureauofStatistics 2016). Source Mapby theauthor

populationlivinginthesixstatecapitalsofSydney,Melbourne,Adelaide,Perth, Brisbane,andHobart,andmorethan40%ofthepopulationlivinginthetwolargest citiesofSydneyandMelbourne(BeerandClower 2009)(Figs. 1.1 and 1.2). Australianproponentsofdecentralization4 haveadvancedmanynewcityproposals toamelioratetheperceivedoverconcentrationofpeople(andrelatedpathologies)in thecapitalcities,aswellastodispersethebenefitsofeconomicdevelopmentto ruralandremoteareas.

WhilethesetwonarrativeshavebeendominantinAustralia,therearemyriad otherreasonsfornewcityplanning.Theambitionofpoliticianstobuildnewcities, inpartasapersonallegacy,endurestheworldover.Othermotivationsfor proposingnewcitiesinAustraliahavebeenhumanitarian,economic,symbolic, political,andmilitaryinnature.Idiscussthesethemesthroughoutthisbook.

Thechallengesthathaveprecipitatedfailedproposalsforneworboostedcities areinmanyrespectspragmatic.Theyincludeconjuringupaneconomicdriver substantialenoughtokick-startanewcity’seconomy,incentivizingthedecentralizationofindustryandjobsfromcompetingcitiesandtowns,andprovidingthe

4Iwillusethetermdecentralizationtorefertoa “moreequitableterritorialdistributionofpopulationwithinruralandremotedistricts,andalesseningofthepreeminentpositionofthecapital cities” (Lonsdale 1972).

1.1NewCities3 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.1.2 Australianpopulationdistribution:ThisgraphshowsAustralia’schangingdistributionof populationbetweenthecapitalcityandotherurban/ruralsectorsovertimeasapercentage.This graphrevealsthecontinueddominanceofthecapitalcities(Hugo 2012). Source Graphbythe author

crucialenablinginfrastructureofports,airports,andraillinestoservicethenew city.

Therearealsopsychologicalbarrierstocreatingneworboostedcitiesin Australia(Lonsdale 1972).Newcityproponentsfacethechallengeofattracting migrantsfromlivablecoastalcapitalcitiestonewcitiesinruralorremoteregions areasinwhichtheisolation,inhospitableclimate,andtheharshnessofthelandscapecanactaspowerfuldisincentivesformigration.Thisbookwrestleswiththese issues,bothpragmaticandpsychological.

1.2Method

Thisbookfocusesonhistoricnewcityproposalsthathavefailedtomaterialize (whichIrefertoas “ghost” cities5),andcurrentnewcityproposalsthatarestillin theprocessofbeingpromotedbytheirproponentsorimplemented,yethavesofar beenunsuccessful.Thisapproachcontrastswithurbandesignhistory,whichis generallywrittenbythewinners(Dovey 2016).Thisbookexplorestheseaforementionedfailurestounderstandwhathavebeenthehurdlestodevelopingnew

5Theterm “ghost” cityshouldnotbeconfusedwiththeChinesephenomenonof “ghostcities” in whichurbanizationoflandandcreationofinfrastructureoftenfaroutpacetheurbanizationofits people(SoraceandHurst 2016).

4 1Introduction julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

regionalcitiesinAustralia,asopposedtopassingjudgement.Thisisatimely processbecause,asRobertFreestone6 explains:

Hardquestionshaveoftenbeenavoided,fatallydumbeddownordownrightignored.Big ideas,productsoftheirtime,havebeenadvancedbutthenretreatedorjustrunoutofpuffas conditionsandcircumstanceshavemovedon(2013).

Arguably,theconstantfocus,inAustralia,ontherelativetriumphofCanberraas aplanned “new” cityhasatendencytocreateablindspotinthenationalconsciousness.Itmeanswefailtolearnfromstudyingthoseventuresthathavebeen lesssuccessful.Arelevantanalogyfortheapproachthisbooktakesistheaviation industry,whichtendstolearnasmuchfromplanesthathavecrashedasthosethat have flownsuccessfully(Syed 2016).Thisbookisaboutexhumingandexamining the “blackboxes” offailedcities,hopefullynotstretchingtheanalogytoofar.The researchquestionthatstructuresthisinquiryis:

WhathavebeenthedominantbarriersthathavecurtailednewcitybuildinginAustralia? IexplorethisquestioninChaps. 2 and 3 inrelationtotwoperiodsofcontemporary relevance 1901–1945and1970–1975 inwhichproponentssoughtnational transformation,inpart,throughnewcityandregionaldevelopmentproposals.

Subsequently,Chap. 4 introducesnorthernAustralia,anddiscussesnewand boostedcityproposals,whichhavetendedtogravitatetothenorthsince2000.7 Subsequently,Chap. 5 reflectsonhowthebarriersdiscussedinChaps. 2 and 3, amongothers,mayplayoutinrelationtothesenewcityproposals.Theresearch questionguidingthisinquiryis:

WhatarelikelytobethebarriersthatcurtailnewcitybuildinginnorthernAustraliainthe twenty-firstcentury?

Finally,Chap. 6 discussesthefactthatmanyofthesehistoricbarriersappearto remainsigni ficant evenastheytransmuteintoslightlydifferentformswith changingtechnologiesandclimate(forinstance).Assuch,Iproposethatanumber ofthelessonsfromfailednewandboostedcitymakinginthetwentiethcentury appearnottohavebeenadequatelyabsorbedintocontemporarypropositions. Lessonsaside,thechapterconcludesbyventuringanumberofgeneralpointsto whichnewcitiescouldaspire.

6ProfessorRobertFreestoneisanacademicincityplanningattheUniversityofNewSouthWales (TheUniversityofNewSouthWales 2017)andhaswrittenextensivelyonhistoricnewcity developmentinAustralia.

7NorthernAustraliaisdefinedastheareaoftheAustraliancontinentnorthofthe26Slatitude.This areaencompassesanareaofapproximately3,500,000km2 (Petherametal. 2008),or45%of Australia’stotallandmass,yethousesonly5%ofAustralia’stotalpopulation(Australian Government 2015).

1.2Method 5 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

1.2.1ScopeandTerminology

Mydecisiontofocusthisbookfromtheearlytwentiethcenturyonwarddoesnot implythatghostcitieswerenotafeatureoftheearliercolonialperiod.Early plannedsettlementsatSydney,NorfolkIsland,Parramatta,Albany,theTamar River,PortEssington,andMelvilleIslandestablishaprecedentforfailedvisionsin thecreationofAustraliancities.AfulldiscussionofsuchcitiesinAustralia’s colonialperiodisbeyondthescopeofthisnecessarilybriefbook.

Readersandcriticsofthisbookmayregardmydecisiontoleaveoutcertainnew cityproposalstobeanomission.Indefenseofthechoicesmade,Ihaveattempted togatheravariedselectionofcitytypes(miningcities,lifestylecities,chartercities, capitalcities,etc.)toyieldamaximumamountofinsightintowhatmakesparticular cities “tick,” orotherwise.Whileasignificantnumberofthesecityproposalswere bythefederalorstategovernments,Ihavealsoincludedunsolicitednewcity proposalsbyindividuals,inpartbecausetheyareentertaining,butalsobecause theyweregenerallyrevealingofthebroadercollectiveconsciousnessofthetime thattheywereproposed.

IamwritingthisbookinPerth,WesternAustralia,andassuchthelattersections ofthebooktendtofocusonWesternAustralianandNorthernTerritorynewcity proposals.Anotetointernationalreaders:Thisbookislimitedtothestoryof decentralizationinAustralia,withsomelimitedexceptions.First,thisreflectsthe requiredbrevityofthebook.Second,itrecognizesthesubstantialdifferences betweenthedominantsettlementpatternsofdifferentcountries reflectingmyriad psychological,cultural,governmental,andenvironmentalfactors(seeLonsdale 1971).

WhileIraisemyvariousbiases,itshouldbenotedthatIamanurbandesigner andhencethediscussionofthenewcitiesgenerally,andthebarrierstheyface,will begenerallydiscussedthroughthelensofurbandesignandspatialplanning.The discussionoftheeconomicdimensionsofnewcitiesistypicallybrief,reflecting thatIamnottrainedintheeconomicissuesposedbynewcities.Nonetheless, economicdriversarecrucialtosuccessfulnewcitymaking afactIdonotmeanto diminish.

Finally,anotewithrespecttotheterminologyusedinthisbook.Thedefinitions ofwhatconstitutesacityvarygreatly,withrespecttobothacity’spopulationsize andthefunctionsitperforms.Nonetheless,forthesakeofclarity,Irefertourban centerswithapopulationofmorethan50,000peopleas “cities,” whilecenterswith apopulationsmallerthanthisare “towns.” Theterm “newcity” describescities developedintheabsenceofanypriorurbanization.Theterm “boostedcity” refers toregionaltownsthathavehadtheirpopulationssubstantiallyboostedfromalow baseto50,000peopleormore.Moreover,Ihaveavoidedplanningjargontoallow accessibilityforthelayreader.

Ihopethatthisbookwillshowthatlearningfromhistoryyieldspositivedividendsfor “evolvingplanning” (Freestone 2014),particularlyinrelationtonewand boostedcityventuresinAustralia.Letusnowbeginourghostlytour.

6 1Introduction julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

References

AustralianBureauofStatistics(2016)AustralianPopulationGrid2016.AustralianBureauof Statistics. http://www.abs.gov.au/ausstats/abs@.nsf/Previousproducts/3218.0Main%20Features 702015-16?opendocument&tabname=Summary&prodno=3218.0&issue=2015-16&num=&view= Accessed22Dec2017

AustralianGovernment(2015)Ournorth,ourFuture:whitepaperondevelopingnorthern Australia.AustralianGovernment,Canberra BeerA,ClowerT(2009)Specialisationandgrowth:evidencefromAustralia’sregionalcities. UrbanStud46(2):369–389

BolleterJ,WellerR(2013)MadeinAustralia:thefutureofAustraliancities.Universityof WesternAustraliaPublishing,Perth

BradyE,RubinsteinL(1944)Dreamsandrealities.YorkPress,Melbourne CathcartM(2010)Thewaterdreamers:theremarkablehistoryofourdrycontinent.Text Publishing,Melbourne DoveyK(2016)Urbandesignthinking.BloomsburyAcademic,London FreestoneR(2013)Backtothefuture.In:BolleterJ,WellerR(eds)MadeinAustralia:thefuture ofAustraliancities.UniversityofWesternAustraliaPress,Perth,pp236–243 FreestoneR(2014)ProgressinAustralianplanninghistory:traditions,themesandtransformations.ProgPlan91:1–29

HugoG(2012)Populationdistribution,migrationandclimatechangeinAustralia:anexploration. UrbanManageTranspSocIncl1–101

IdriessI(1944)OnwardAustralia:developingacontinent.AngusandRobertson,Sydney LonsdaleR(1971)Decentralization:theAmericanexperienceanditsrelevanceforAustralia. AustJSocIssues6(2):116

LonsdaleR(1972)Manufacturingdecentralization:thediscouragingrecordinAustralia.Land Econ48(4):321–328

MannionA(2014)Slumsspreadnear ‘newtowns’.AmPlanAssoc6–7

McNeillJR,EngelkeP(2016)Thegreatacceleration:anenvironmentalhistoryofthe anthropocenesince1945.HarvardUniversityPress,Cambridge MiklianJ,HoelscherK(2014)Ataleofnewcities:thefutureofurbanplanninginthedeveloping world.HarvardIntRev35(4):13

MoserS(2015)Newcities:oldwineinnewbottles?DialoguesHumGeogr5(1):31–35

PetheramC,McMahonTA,PeelMC(2008)FlowcharacteristicsofriversinnorthernAustralia: implicationsfordevelopment.JHydrol357(1):93–111

SetoKC,GuneralpB,HutyraL(2012)Globalforecastsofurbanexpansionto2030anddirect impactsonbiodiversityandcarbonpools.PNAS109(40):16083–16088

SoraceC,HurstW(2016)China’sphantomurbanisationandthepathologyofghostcities. JContempAsia46(2):304–322

SouthphommasaneT(2012)Dontgobacktowhereyoucamefrom:whymulticulturalismworks. Newsouth,Sydney

SyedM(2016)Blackboxthinking:marginalgainsandthesecretsofhighperformance.John Murray,London

TheUniversityofNewSouthWales(2017)ProfessorRobertFreestone.TheUniversityofNew SouthWales. https://www.be.unsw.edu.au/staff/professor-robert-freestone .Accessed10Jan 2018

References 7 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Chapter2 CreatingaRuralCivilization

Abstract Thischapterscopestheearlytomid-twentiethcenturyperiod(1901–1945)inwhichAustraliansstrovetocreatea “ruralcivilization.” Thefantasythat propelledthisproposedcivilizationwasthatAustraliamightonedaysupportarural populationofhundredsofmillions.This,theproponentsofthe “gardencity” model suggested,woulddeliverbothphysicalandsocialhealthbenefitswhilebolstering Australia’sdefenseswithahealthy “country-raised” population.Thenumerousnew cityproposalsthatemergedfollowingtheSecondWorldWarincludedaschemeto buildcitiesaroundapermanently floodedLakeEyreanddottedalongvastrailway networkscircumscribingAustralia ’saridinterior.Alltheseproposals floundered, however,becauseoftheharshrealitiesofAustralia’sinteriorandtheenduring tyrannyofdistance.Addedtothiswasthedominanceandlivabilityoftheexisting capitalcitiesonthecoast.

Keywords Newcities Ruralcivilization Decentralization Gardencities Ruraltowns Australiaunlimited Temporarytowns

2.1Creatinga “RuralCivilization ”

LiketheprinceinArabianNights’ Entertainments,we’llmountourMagicCarpetand strangenewworldsdiscover.Weshallbemakersofcities,andwe’llgrowathousand bladesofgrasswherebutonegrowsnow.

Idriess(1944)

Thischapterscopesthelatenineteenthtomid-twentiethcenturyperiodinwhich Australiansstrovetocreatea “ruralcivilization.” Thefantasyonwhichthis imaginedcivilizationwasbasedwasthatAustraliamightonedaysupporta “rural populationofperhapshundredsofmillionsdespitetheoverwhelmingdominanceof theexistingcapitalcitiesandtheharshrealitiesofitsenvironment ” (Murphy 2009). Dreamsofaruralcivilizationalsoemergedinresponsetoapatternofmetropolitan dominancethathadcrystalizedinAustraliabyFederation(1901)(Freestone 2013).

© TheAuthor(s)2018

J.Bolleter, TheGhostCitiesofAustralia,SpringerBriefsinGeography, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-319-89896-4_2

9 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Thispatternwasinsomemeasureduetotheconfigurationofcolonialadministrationinwhichthecapitalcitiesallwereports commercialandadministrative centersrelatingtoLondonratherthantoeachother(Paris 1994;Potts 2003).

Advocatesofaruralcivilizationidenti fiedanumberofdifferentfactorsas makingsuchruraldevelopmentnecessary.Theserelatedtoincreasedagricultural productionandstrongernationaldefense aswellastothealleviationofan unhealthyandunnaturalconcentrationofpeopleinthedominantcapitalcities.

2.2TheCaseforaRuralCivilization

2.2.1AVastRuralBounty

EdwardBrady,theauthorof “AustraliaUnlimited” (1918),wasoneofthechief proponentsofthesettlementandagriculturaldevelopmentoftheinteriorof Australia.HeprojectedthatAustraliacouldsupportavastpopulationifAustralia’s “DeadHeart” couldbetransformedbytechnologyandscienceintothe “RedHeart” (Mirams 2012).HewroteofAustralia’sinterior:

EverywhereprejudicedIbelievebynooversanguinetemperament – IfoundWonder, Beauty,unequalledResource.Underthearidseemingoftheplains,Isawthepossibilities ofmarveloustilth.Barrenhillspouredoutagoldenrecompenseinminerals.Thewhole continenthasprovedtobeavaststorehouseofmainlyundevelopedwealth(Brady 1918).

BradyurgedtheAustralianstowageawaragainst “thelastwallsofnature” and tostormthe “sullenbarricades ” withan “army” ofimmigrants(Cathcart 2010), ratherthanacceptingthearidityofAustralia’sinterior apitilessdesertfromwhich theindigenouspeoplecouldekeoutalivingbutwheresomanyEuropeanexplorers died(Jones 2001).Bradyforesawthat,withinafewgenerations,suchareascould raiseAustralia’spopulationto500,000,000people(Cathcart 2010) apopulation increasethatwouldhavenecessitatednewcitiestoservicevastlyexpandedagriculturaldistrictsaswellascitiesatstrategicpointsfortheprocessingandexportof extractedresources.BradyarguedthatAustralia’slandscapeshadbeengreatly underestimatedandwere “highlyfertile”;however,thedevelopmentofrailways, irrigationprojectsandsmaller,moreintensivefarmswouldbenecessarytounlock thispotential(Frost 2004).

Brady’sbelief,inpart,stemmedfromhismemoriesoftravelingtotheUnited Statesasachildandwitnessinghowthearidwesthadbeentransformedinto productivefarms(Mirams 2012).Forhim,theUSprovidedanexampleofwhat Australiacouldonedaybecome(Cathcart 2010),andheurgedAustraliato “make uphermindtobeapowerfulnation” asAmericahaddone.Aboveall,heproclaimed: “Theemptyspacesmustbe filled” (Mirams 2012).

Proponentsofaruralcivilizationproducedawaveofpro-developmentliterature thatsimilarlyarguedthattheagriculturalpotentialofAustraliahadbeen

102CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.2TheCaseforaRuralCivilization11

dramaticallyunderestimated.HistorianCharlesBean’s 1 “InYourHands, Australians” (1918)proposedthatAustralia ’sfuturelayinmillionsoffarmscoveringitsvastlandscapes(Murphy 2009).Despitethechallengesofaridityandthe poorsoilsthatthreatenedthisvision,thiswayofthinkingwasintheascendantuntil themid-twentiethcentury,andbeyond.AustralianauthorIonIdriess2 exhortedin 1944:

Wehaveinourcontinentaninexhaustiblestorehouseofalltheneedsofmanforamillion yearstocome.ThereisnolackofanythinginAustraliaforus,andfuturegenerations.All thatweandourdescendantscaneverneed,nomatterwhatunknownmaterialsfuture advancementandinventionswillcallfor,isallhereintherawstate(Idriess 1944).

Giventheseresourceswereperceivedtobespreadacrossthecontinent,the prevailingbeliefwasthatAustralia’smajorcitieswerebecomingunnecessarily largeatthecostoftheruraltowns(Neutze 1974).Thissituation,itwasargued, reflectedanimmaturestageofdevelopmentthatwouldeventuallygivewaytoa “natural” Europeanlandscapeofevenlyspreadfarmsandtownsdispersedwithina bountifulrurallandscape(Murphy 2009).Whilesucharuralbountycouldbethe “pullfactor” fordrawingpopulationsawayfromthecoastalcapitalcities,the “push factor” wasconsideredtobetheever-increasingoverconcentrationofthepopulation,andresultingpathologies,3 inthedominantcapitalcities.

2.2.2ThePathologiesoftheCapitalCities

TheworryingconcentrationofpeopleinAustralia’smajorcitieshadbeenamatter ofseriousconcernsincetheearlydaysofsettlement.GovernorGawlercomplained bitterlyoftheoverconcentrationofthepopulationinthenewtownshipofAdelaide asearlyas1838(Rushman 1976).Bythelatenineteenthcentury,advocatesof decentralizationbelievedAustraliancitieswereunhealthybothtothebodyandto morality,duetothemcontainingafesteringcocktailofovercrowding,decadence, disease,vice,andpoverty(Neutze 1974).

ThisnodoubtderivedfromanEnglishunderstandingofthetimethatcitieswere dangerouslyunhealthy(Davison 2016).Indeed,theaverageEnglishcitydweller wasbarelyhalfthatoftheruraldweller.Moreover,densitynotonlyproduced

1CharlesBean(1879–1968)wasahistorianandjournalistwhoferventlybelievedinthe redemptivepowerofruralareasandwasinvolvedintheTownPlanningAssociation(Inglis 1979). 2IonIdriess(1889–1979)wasaprolificwriterfromSydney.Thecombinationofanambitious viewofAustralia’sprogressandtheromanceofitshistoryensuredthepopularityofhisbooks (NationalCentreofBiography 2017).HispublisherssometimesresortedtolockingIdriessina roomuntilhehad finishedanewspaperarticleorbookchapterbecause(allegedly)hewasa notoriousdrunk.Thiscouldpartlyexplainsomeofhismoreoutlandishproposalswhichare coveredlaterinthischapter 3Theterm “pathology” isusedinthisbooktorefertoanydeviationfromahealthycondition,as opposedtothestudyofdiseases.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

physicaldisease,butthecorruptionofmorals(Davison 2016).ReverendJohn Montgomerywentasfarastodeclarein1860: “Ifhumanbeingsarecrowded togethermoralcorruptiontakesplace,ascertainlyasfermentationorputrefactionin aheapoforganicmatter” (Davison 2016).

Australiancommentatorsassumedasimilar “fearofthemoralcontagionthat theyassociatedwiththecommunalismandpromiscuityoftenementsandapartments” (Davison 2016).Taylor ’sTownPlanningforAustraliadeclaresAustralian cities poetA.D.Hope’s “teemingsores”—tobe “congestedwith physically-crushedandmentally-warpedmenandwomen” (Murphy 2009).

2.2.3TheIdealRuralCitizenry

Incontrasttothedesignationofcitydwellersasphysicallyandmorallycorruptwas theideathat “peopleevenlydistributedinsmall-ormedium-sizedtownswere stronger,morallyandmentallyaswellasphysically”4 (BeaninFreestone 1982). Decentralizationproponentsbelievedthataninterventiontoredresstheconcentrationofpopulationinthedominantcitieswasofvastimportancetoensurethe developmentofavigorousrace,bothfromaphysicalandmoralperspective(James BarrettinDavison 2003).In1918,Beanreflectedthat “themorethecapitalcities resembledcountrytownsandthecountryitselfthebetteritwouldbeforthenation” (citedinMurphy 2009).Inthiswayofthinking,thepreservationof “country-like” conditionsinourcitieswouldunderpinthephysicalhealthandmoralityofcitizens (Murphy 2009).

Proponentsbelievedthataruralcivilizationalsoofferedgreatersocialand economicstability.Barrettassertedthat: “Thefarmer ’sknowledgeoflifeismore fundamental,itismorefar-reaching,anditismoresolid,andforthatreasonpeople realizeinstinctivelythatsocialstabilitymust finditsultimatebasisonruralcivilization ” (Murphy 2009).Inthisreading,itwasunderstoodthatamorenatural environmentwouldacttoimprovethephysicalconditionoftheworkingclasses andwouldreducetheirdiscontentbeforeitboiledoverintopoliticalinsurrection.

Thedesireforaruralcivilizationalsowasnourishedbyanunderlyingbeliefthat “theonlytruesourceofwealthwasthesoil” (Davison 2003).Inthisreading,the countrywasthemostdependablesourceofwealth;citypeopleweresimplyparasiteswholivedoffthelaborsoftheircountrycousins(Davison 2016).Evidence forthiswasaperceiveddeclineinself-sufficiency fromasearlyasthe1870s as employmentinAustralia’surbansocietywasdominatedby “services” (Jones 2001).Assuch,decentralizationproponentsemotionallycharacterizedadriftof populationfromruraltourbanareas,withthecityrobbingthecountryofitswealth andpopulation(Potts 2003).

4Therewaslittleevidencecitedtosupportthisclaimand,withtheexceptionofpoorurbanslums, thephysicalhealthofruraldwellerswasnotnecessarilybetterthanthatofsuburbancitydwellers.

122CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.2TheCaseforaRuralCivilization13

2.2.4PopulateorPerish

Thebenefitsofaruralcivilizationalsorelatedtothenation’sdefense. Decentralizationproponentsbelievedcountrypeoplewerephysicallysuperiorto theirweedycitycousins,andbetter fittedtowagetheloomingbattlefornational survival.TheNewSouthWalesSelectCommitteeonAgriculturalIndustry observedin1920thatthe “bestcroponourfarmsistheannualcropofbabies” (Davison 2016).Afurtherconnectionbetweenthecreationofaruralcivilization andnationaldefenserelatedtothedesiretoconsolidatethesettlementofAustralia’s continentallandmasssoastowardoffothernations(particularlyAsian) asituationepitomizedbythephrase “populateorperish” (Babb 2016).TheWhiterural manwasimaginedasabulwarkagainstthethreatofthe “YellowPeril,” aswellas againstAustralia’sindigenouspopulation(Murphy 2009).

Politiciansthroughouttheinterwaryearsthumpedthedevelopmentanddefense drumandemphasizedtheneed,inparticular,topopulatethenorthofAustralia. ImperialrepresentativessternlycriticizedAustralia ’sinabilityto fillits “empty spaces” with “sturdywhitedefendersoftherace” (Murphy 2009).OthercommentatorsregardedAustralia’svast “emptyspaces” asaderelictionofnational duty,asituationthathadtoberemediedlestothers(particularlyAsians)dothejob forus(McGregor 2013).NelsonLemmon,amemberfortheNewSouthWales parliamentaryseatofSt.George,scoldedthegovernmentforfailingtocomprehend “thatoneofthegreatestdefenseneedsofthiscountryisthepeoplingofourempty north,” towardwhichhedeclared “1,200,000,000Asianeyesarelookinginenvy.” Heforetoldthatfuturegenerationswouldpaythepricefortoday’sneglect (McGregor 2016).

2.3TheGhostCitiesofaRuralCivilization

Thefollowingsectionsurveysproposalsfornewcitiesthatemergedoutofthe clamortoinstallaruralcivilizationacrossAustralia’scontinentallandmass.The proponentsoftheseproposalswereallindividuals;however,theyalsobroadly alignedwiththeethosofthefederalRegionalDevelopmentDivision,5 the CommonwealthHousingCommission,andstateauthoritiesadministeringregional developmentprograms(CitiesCommission 1973;DepartmentofEnvironment 1976).Nonetheless,thefollowingnewcityproposals,venturedbyindividuals, representthemostdramaticexpressionoftheregionaldevelopmentethos andas suchoffer,themostpertinentlessonsforcontemporarynewcityproponents.

5ThisdivisionwaswithintheDepartmentofPost-WarReconstructionandwasdisbandedfollowingthechangeofgovernmentin1949(CitiesCommission 1973).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.3.1TheGardenCityModel

Thedesiretocreatearuralcivilizationwas,inpart,concernedwithescapingthe pathologyassociatedwithcities;assuch,thesecityproposalsareanapparent contradiction.However,newcityproponentsalleviatedthisinconsistencyby venturing “gardencities”—citiesthatcouldwardofftheunhealthieraspectsofcity lifebecausetheywerereconciledwithanennoblingconceptionofnature.

Inhispioneeringbook “GardenCitiesofTomorrow” (1902),Englishsocial idealistand “planner”6 EbenezerHowardpitchedhisideaforanewkindofsettlement.Howardprojectedthatthegardencitywouldproduceamuch-desired “spontaneousmovementofthepeoplefromourcrowdedcitiestothebosomofour kindlymotherearth,atoncethesourceoflife,ofhappiness,ofwealth,andof power” duetotheperfectunionofthebenefi tsofthetownandthecountry(Murphy 2009).

Howardcomparedtherelationshipbetweentownandcountryingardencitiesto thecomplementarityofmaleandfemale,urgingthattownandcountry “mustbe married,andoutofthisjoyousunionwillspringanewhope,anewlife,anew civilization” (Murphy 2009).Thisreconciliationbetweentownandcountrytended totaketheformofbountifulgreenpublicandprivateopenspace.Thelimitingof gardencitiestoapopulationof32,000peoplealsomeantthatthecitiesnevergotso largeastolimittheirresidents ’ accesstonatureontheedgeofthecity,typicallyin theformoffringinggreenbelts.

Howard’sgardencityconcepthadaprofoundinfluenceontheemergingtown planningmovementinAustraliafromtheearlytwentiethcentury(Murphy 2009). Britishexpertisewasconsideredtobeatthecuttingedgeofplanningtheoryand practice(MacLachlanandHorsley 2015),andAustraliaprovedparticularly receptivetogardencitythinkingespousedbytheBritishGardenCitiesandTown PlanningAssociation(Burke 1987).EventhereveredEbenezerHowardhimself dreamedofanAustraliangardencity:

Aspopulationincreasesand flowstoAustralia,itisnotdifficulttopicturethatevery importantnewtownwillbebasedupongardencitypracticeandideas.Icanseenowayof correctingthecurrentover-populationofbigcitiesandinterestingpeopleinproductive enterprisesofthesoil,exceptbytakingtothecountryalltheadvantagesofthemodern townorcity(Freestone 1982).

2.3.2GardenCityPropositions

ThediffusionofthegardencityideatoAustraliaresultedinnumerousgardencity proposals.TheseincludeonefromDr.Price,theMayorofToowoombain1918, 6Britishauthoritiesdidnotformallyrecognizeplanningasadisciplineatthistime.

142CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.3TheGhostCitiesofaRuralCivilization15

whoenvisionedanindustrialgardencityatDarra,theareanowcomprisingan unremarkablesuburbsouthofBrisbane(Freestone 1982).Othergardencity schemeswereproposedfortheminingtownofYallourninVictoria,withacentral square,greenbelt,andsimplecottagedesigns whichyieldedAustralia’smost convincingcopyofLetchworth,agardencitybuiltontheedgeofLondon (Freestone 1982),yettodayismostlya19-holegolfcourse.

Australianadvocatesalsoplannedsatellitegardencitiesorbitingthedominant capitalcities.TownplannerAlfredBrown7 wasavocalsupporterofthisapproach, andatanAustralianPlanningCongress,headvocateda “halo” ofnewsatellite townsorbitingSydney “becauseofapassionateconvictionthathereinliesthehope forthesurvivalofurbanlife” (Freestone 1982).Satellitecities,inspiredbythe gardencitymovement,wereproposedinthepost–SecondWorldWarperiodat Elizabeth,northofAdelaide,andKwinana,southofPerth,bothofwhichwere residentialcentersadjacenttodevelopingindustrialcenters(Freestone 1982).

2.3.3Brady’sMallacoota

EdwardBrady’sproposedgardencity,Mallacoota,isofparticularinterestbecause itgivesrarespatialexpressiontohis “AustraliaUnlimited” ethos.Whilewritingup the “boostersbible,” BradytookupthechallengeofprovingthattheAustralian continentcouldsupportalargepopulationbyselecting130hainMallacootain Victoriaasasiteforanewcity(Mirams 2012).Thissitelaymidwaybetweentwo statecapitalcities,MelbourneandSydney,withadeepportwithin70km(Brady andRubinstein 1944).

BradyarguedthatAustraliansoldiershadprovedthemselves fightingtheenemy, nowtheycould “fightnaturesubduingtheforcesmetwithinthewildbush” inthe creationofasoldiers’ gardencity(Mirams 2012).Bradypredictedthatthecity wouldgrowto200,000peoplebytheyear2000,offeringnewmigrantsfresh healthyfood,sophisticatedconversation,electricity,churches,hospitals,hotels,and railways,amongotherbenefitsofcivilization(Mirams 2012).

Bradyenvisagedtheeconomicdriversoftheself-containedmanufacturing centerMallacootaweretobeitsair-conditionedfactoriesandcultivatedandhighly productivefarms.Theweldingtogetheroftheagriculturalandindustrialactivities ofthecommunity,underefficientcontrol,hebelievedwouldensurethe “health, happiness,andprosperityofitsmembers” (1944).

Bradyhadadoptedsocialismashispoliticalcreedandwasafoundingmember oftheAustralianSocialistLeagueParty(Mirams 2012).Heproposedthatthewhole Mallacootacommunitywouldworkforacommonobjective,atthesametimeit wasenvisagedthatthecitizenswouldretaintheirown “individuality”—atleasttoa degree(1944).WhileMallacootaemergedoutofthefermentofthe,originally 7AlfredBrownhadbeeninvolvedintheplanningfortheBritishgardencityofWelwyn.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

utopian,gardencitymovementBradywascautiousaboutbeingtooaspirational.As hemadeclear: “WarnedbythefailuresofUtopianexperiments” we “haverejected theimpracticalandacceptedonlyideaswhichcanbeconvertedintofacts ” (1944).

These “facts” formedthebasisforthedetailedlayoutforMallacootathatwas,at leastpartly,copiedfromtheradialformofHoward’sgardencitymodel.Plansshow theself-containedcitywastobelaidoutlikeaspiderwebwitheightradiating avenues,emanatingfromacentralpark,eachwithasignifi cantshoppingor entertainmentfrontageof250meach(notmoreorless…)(BradyandRubinstein 1944)(Fig. 2.1).Thecompositionalsoincludedfactoriesinradialbands,swathes ofsuburbanresidences,andalibraryandtechnicalschoolsothatthe “intellectual needsofthecommunity” weretakenintoaccount(BradyandRubinstein 1944).

BradyenvisagedwalkabilityasakeydriverofMallacoota’sdesign.Ashe enthused: “Nooperativewilllivemorethantenor fifteenminutesfromhisorher workorfromtheshoppingorentertainmentareas” (BradyandRubinstein 1944). Mallacootawasalsotoencourageahealthylifestylethroughgardening:

Noresidentialsitewillbelessthanone-thirdofanacre[1350squaremeters] – givingthe occupantsopportunityfor flowerandvegetablegardeningandfruit-growing.Underexpert advice,settlerswillbegiveneveryencouragementtoestablishbeautifulgardens. Competitionswillbesetupandprizesdistributedtoincreasetheirinterestinthishealthy andpleasurablewayofemployingleisurehours(BradyandRubinstein 1944).

Fig.2.1 Mallacoota’splannedlayout:Brady’slayoutofMallacootawasatleastpartlybasedon Howard’sradialgardencitymodelandencouragedhealthylifestylesthroughwalkability, gardening,androutinevenerealdiseasechecks. Source PlanbyEdwardBradytracedbytheauthor

Key 1.
2.
3. Industry 4. Suburb 1 2 3 4 3 400m
Wallagarough River
Park
City center
162CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.3TheGhostCitiesofaRuralCivilization17

Inaddition,thehealthofMallacoota’scitizenswastobeensuredbymore intrusivemeans suchasbyroutineexaminationforvenerealdisease,especially beforemarriage(BradyandRubinstein 1944).Bradyferventlybelievedspecialcare shouldbeprovidedforpregnantmothers,inpartbecause: “Thefutureofanation liesinitsrearingahealthyyounggeneration” (1944).

BradyenvisagedMallacootaasmorethananisolatedcity.Hesawitasamodel fordevelopingAustralia ’sentireeasternseaboard,ademonstrationofthelineson whichfuturedevelopmentofAustraliashouldproceed.Asheurged:

Australianpost-warpolicymustbetooccupy,developandmakeproductiveareassuitable forsuchpurposes;ofwhichthereareagreatnumber.Alongtheeasternseaboardthetempo ofsettlementshouldbeincreased … fromTownsvilletoMelbourne(BradyandRubinstein 1944).

Bradyforesawasubstantialincreaseinairtransportafterthewarwouldprovide themeansofstitchingtogetherthisextensivedecentralizedsettlementpattern.As heproclaimed:

OnecanvisualizeavastnetworkofairwaysovertheAustraliancontinent.Theword “remoteness” willloseitsmeaning.Inconvenienceswhichhavemadepeoplehesitateto adoptanex-urbanlifewillnolongerexist.Apost-war-settleratMallacootawillreadhis morningpaperatbreakfasttimelikeanysuburbandweller.Hiseveningpaperwillbeat handbeforesundown.HismailwillreachhimassoonasitreachesaMelbournesuburb now(BradyandRubinstein 1944).

Intime,Brady’sfailuretointeresttheVictorianGovernmentintheMallacoota gardencityangeredhim.HesentafuriouslettertotheLandsDepartmentin1923 claiminghis “patrioticambition” wasbeingstrangledby “yardsofredtape” (Mirams 2012).Thiswastonoeffect.Today,thebroaderShireofEastGippsland, withinwhichthecitywastobelocated,hasapopulationofjust41,000overavast areaof21,051km2 (withjustover950inthesmalltouristtownofMallacoota). MallacootalieswithintheCroajingalongNationalPark.AsMirams(2012) explains,intheend,aviewthatvaluedthearea’sendemicecologywonoutover Brady’sviewthatthelandconstitutedan “unequalledresource.”

2.3.4Hatfield’sInteriorCities

SubsequenttoMallacoota’sdemise, “bushwriter” WilliamHatfield8 ventureda planfor “migratinginland,buildingbeautifulnewtownsclosertoourfoodsupply” (Freestone 2013),avisionsetoutinhisbook “AustraliaReclaimed” (Hat field 1944).Hatfield’splanemergedasaresponsetohisassessmentthatAustralia’s capitalcitieswerepolluted,congested,anddesperatelyshortofhousing(Hat field

8WilliamHat field(1892–1969)wasawriterand “bushman” whoworkedformanyyearsinthe northofSouthAustralia,CentralAustralia,theNorthernTerritory,andQueensland.Hewas passionateabouttheagriculturaldevelopmentofAustralia’sinterior(Serle 1983).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

1944).Investigatorsintotheissueconcludedthat300,000houseswereneededto overcomethehousingshortageandtoreplacesub-standarddwellingsinthecapital cities(Burns 1944).However,Hat fieldbelievedthattheconventionalremedyof simplyerectingnewhousesinever-spreadingsuburbswouldonlyworsenthe problemofcongestion,notsolveit.Asheexplained: “Gettingtoandfromworkis alreadythemostdisagreeableportionoftheday’sendeavor” (Hat field 1944). Instead,Hatfi eldargued:

wearefacedwiththeproblemofconstructingatleastaquarterofamillionnewhouses, anditwouldbeimmeasurablybettertobuildeveryoneofthemawayfromourpresent congestedcities,inproperlyplannedtownswhichwillhaveas firmlyinmindbytheir designers,theculturalaswellasphysicalneedsoftheirinhabitants(1944).

Thiswasnohalf-hearteddecentralizationscheme.Hat fieldadvocatedthatthe housingproblemshouldbetackledonacontinentalscale,andnotmerelyasa continuationofthe “insaneover-concentrationofpopulationinthe fivemainland capitals ” (Hat field 1944).Adoptingthelanguageofthegardencity,Hatfield explainedthathisnewtownscouldbe:

freefromsmokeanddirt,centeredinacountrysidechosenforitsfertilityinorderto provideabundanceoffreshfoodswithinminimumtransport.Artandeducationcangohand inhandastheyalwaysshouldhavedone,withscienceandindustry(insmokeless, glass-brickfactories)marchingbesidethem,andanewgenerationcanberaisedwiththe bestchanceofphysical fitness,mentalalertness,moralstabilityandaestheticappreciation (1944).

Hatfieldenthusedthatthenewtownswouldsatisfythe “undyinghumanlonging forthesightofgreen,forthesoundofbirds,scentof flowers,cleankissoffresh windsonthecheek.” Moreover,hebelieveditwould “freemenfromthesoulless grindofanabsurdover-industrialization … itshideouslanesofbrick … screaming factories … andfoulcavernsinthesub-strataoftheearth’scrust” (Hat field 1944). Theproposedeconomicdriversforthenewtownswereagricultureandlight industry,suchasspinningandweaving,clothingmanufacture,furniture,and accessories, “sothattherewouldneverbeaneedforthechildrenofthecommunity toleavehomewhenthetimecameforthemtoseekemployment” (Hat field 1944). Hatfieldthoughtthatallsuchtownsshouldprovideareasforcultivationtosupply thefreshfoods,suchasmilkandeggs,fruitandvegetables,neededbyacommunity andassuchguaranteeameasureofagriculturalself-sufficiency.

Inhistypicallyaspirationalstyle,Hat fieldalsoaimedtoboostexistingtownsin theinterior.Tothisend,heproposedthatAliceSpringsbecomeAustralia’smajor centralcity ahiveofindustryhousingmanythousandsofpeopleandacentral pointtoservethesurroundingvastagriculturaldistricts(Fig. 2.2).Asheexplained:

Tothefourpointsofthecompassitsbusyworkerscanstreamouteverymorning,notby train,butbyhelicopterandairplane,arrivingonthesceneoftheirday’sworktwohundred milesawayinthesametimeasittakesaSydney fittertoreachhisfactoryinBotanyfrom hishomeinRyde(Hat field 1944).

182CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.3TheGhostCitiesofaRuralCivilization19

Fig.2.2 Hatfield’sAliceSprings:HatfieldproposedthatAliceSpringsbecomeAustralia’smajor centralcity ahiveofindustryhousingtomanythousandsofpeopleandacentralpointtoserve thesurroundingvastagriculturaldistricts. Source Montagebytheauthor.Baseimage(lower)by unknownphotographer(http://yirara.nt.edu.au/about-us6 ).Baseimage(upper)byunknownphotographer(https://www.wwiivehicles.com/united-states/aircraft/bomber/boeing-b-17-flying-fortressbomber.asp)

Hatfieldsuggestedthatthemilitarydeliverthescheme.9 BeforetheSecond WorldWar,armyauthoritieshadtakentheboldstepofestablishingtrainingcamps hundredsofkilometersintothehinterland,anexamplethatinspiredHat field.These semi-permanentcampswereconstructedoftimberandiron,withwater,light,and seweragesystems,cinematheatersandconcerthallsinareaspreviouslyuninhabited byEuropeans(Hat field 1944).Inasimilarvein,Hatfieldthoughtthatthegovernmentshouldignoreallpresentpopulationconcentrationsandstrikeboldlyinland, butnotinwhathereferredtoasthe “senselesslyscatteredoddmentsonanysuch madnessassoldiersettlements” asproliferatedaftertheFirstWorldWar,butrather in:

organizedbattalions,pushingouttheroadsandrailwaystothevillagestheywillbuildin whichtoliveasmembersofacommunityunitedforself-help.Villagescompletewith amenitiesoftown – well-builthousesrepletewitheverycomfortanddrudgerydodging

9AttheconclusionoftheFirstWorldWargroupsofwar-wearyex-soldierswerebecominga disquietingpresenceinAustraliancities.Onesolutionwastoengagetheseoftendisruptiveservicemenwithanewpatrioticbattle thebattletoconquerthe “vastopenspaces” ofAustralia (Cathcart 2010).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

device,withwellpavedstreets,parks,playing fields,swimmingpools,schools,cinemas andlibraries;villagesinhandyreachoflandswhereteamworkandmechanicalaidwill replacetheback-breakingsolitaryeffortofotheryearswhichbrought(formanyactual producers)suchscantreward(Hatfield 1944).

Hatfieldproposedthattheconstructionofthetemporarytownswouldonlytakea matterofweeks(utilizingthemilitarycampmodel)andthattheimmediate accommodationofworkingpersonnelandtheirfamilieswouldfollow.Fromthere, theycouldbeginonthepermanenttownconstructioninhandyreachofthebig irrigation,hydroelectric,andforestryschemes(1944).

Thesevastirrigationandhydroelectricschemesrequiredthesubstantialdammingofriversthatwould,inturn,yieldenormousagriculturalopportunities.Tothis end,heproposedthatanarmoreddivisionofbulldozersmuststartinfromPort Augusta,gougingoutachannelupthroughthesystemofsaltpansknownasthe TorrensLakesrighttoLakeEyreinAustralia ’sinterior “tolettheseaintothat blisteringeyesoreandputmoistureintotheatmosphere.” Inaddition,Hatfield envisagedthatallcreeksandrivers flowingtowardtheinlandmustbedammed, channelsdugafreshandthebanksheldbywillows “tobringpulsinglifeagaininto theDeadHeartofthecontinent” (Hatfield 1944).Again,thedeploymentofthe armywasinstrumentalinachievingthisvision:

ThesameT.N.T.thatblastsanenemystrongholdfromthemapcanblastawaythrough mountainstocarrycoastlinetorrentstothearidlands;thesamebulldozersthatcrasheda roadthroughfever-ridden,enemyinfestedjunglescanshoveearthupindams,gouge channelstobringwatertotheachingplains(Hat field 1944).

ToHatfield’swayofthinking,thisvastschemewas “defensiveirrigation,” the constructionofalineofforti ficationagainsttheencroachingdesertthathebelieved wasevenmoreinsidiousthanevenJapaneseinfi ltrationstrategies(Hat field 1944). Beyondreengineeringthehydrologyoftheinterior,Hatfi eldproposedrailway linesthatwouldconnectcoastalcitiestothenewinlandtowns.Thiswasto eliminatethewastefulpracticeofhaulingproducetothecoastalcitiesforprocessing.Furthermore,Australia’scoastalcitiescouldwellbecomewhattheywere originally seaportsforhandlinginternationaltrade insteadofconstitutingwhat thegreaterportionofthecommunityknewasAustralia(Hatfi eld 1944).

2.3.5Idriess’ InteriorRailwayCities

WhileHatfieldwasferventinhisbeliefthatcentralAustraliashouldaccommodate asignificantpopulation,hestoppedshortofproposingasettlementpatternto containthisgrowth.QueenslandbusinesspersonAlfredGriffiths,10 however,

10AlfredGriffiths(1879–1948)wasdirectorofacompanythatbuiltlocomotives,otherrolling stock,andsteelsleepers(French 1983).Hewaswidelyknownthroughouthishomestateof Queensland,particularlyintheengineeringandpastoralworlds(Idriess 1944).

202CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

advancedsuchascheme,whichwassubsequentlypickedupbywriterIonIdriessas amodelfordevelopingAustralia’sinterior.

Griffiths,inspiredbytheAmerican “greatwave” ofdevelopment,whichclosely followedthewestwardextensionsoftherailroads(andnodoubthisownsteel railwaysleeperbusinessinterests!)proposedan11,000kmcontinental-scalerailwayencirclingcentralAustralia astructurethat,ifbuilt,couldpotentiallydirect settlementoftheinterior(Idriess 1944).Theoverallintentionoftherailsystemwas tolinkuppastoral,agricultural,andminingactivitiesininlandAustraliawith existingandproposedcoastalportsintheGulfofCarpentariaandthePilbara, Darwin,Wyndham,Townsville,Perth,Adelaide,Melbourne,Sydney,andBrisbane (Idriess 1944)(Fig. 2.3).

Thisschemealsohadapowerfulsymbolicdimensionbecauseinthemindsof manyAustralianstherailwayswereapowerfulsymbolofprogress(Blainey 1966). Symbolicallyitbothclaimedandtamedtheinterior thevastspacethatNobel prize-winningauthorPatrickWhitecalledthe “GreatAustralianEmptiness ” (Tacey 2009).

Criticsoftheschemepointedoutthatthetrunklineoftherailwayintheinterior didnotconnectanymajorexistingsettlements.Idriess,inresponse,explainedthat therewereanumberofreasonsforpreferringsuchaninlandroutetoamore populatedcoastalone.First,theprincipalpurposeofthelinewastoservethe

Fig.2.3 Griffiths’ interiorrailwayscheme:ThismapshowsAlfredGriffiths’ planforavast 11,000kmcontinental-scalerailway,whichwastoopenupcentralAustraliafordevelopment. Source MapbyIonIdriesstracedbytheauthor 2.3TheGhostCitiesofaRuralCivilization21

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

maximumareaofthecountryandtobringeveryhabitablepartofAustraliawithin approximately250kmofarailway.Second,theinlandconfigurationmeantthat troopsandequipmentcouldbemovedinternallytoanypartofthecoastthatmight bethreatenedbyanenemywhilenotbeingvulnerabletonavalattackduring mobilization(Idriess 1944).

Detractorsoftheschemealsoarguedthatthefreightmovementsgeneratedby sucharailwaywouldnotprovideenoughrevenuetopayworkingexpensesand interestonthecapitalneededtofunditsconstruction.Idriessrespondedby claiming:

Thatnodoubtiscorrectwiththecountryasitis.TothisIwouldreplythatIdonot visualizethecountryremainingasitis,butratherthatIhavefaiththatitispossibleand practicaltosettlesufficientpeopleovertheareawearediscussingtomakethebuildingof railwaysandroadsworthwhile(Idriess 1944).

Idriess’splanwasthatwhentheSecondWorldWareventuallyconcludedthe army whichhadacquiredlargenumbersofroad-makingmachines,vehicles, electriclightplants,pumpingequipment,toolsandothergear couldbeimmediatelydivertedtobuildingtherailwaysandassociatedroadsthatheenvisaged (Idriess 1944) muchlikeHat field.Moreover,Idriessbelievedthatmanyofthe tensofthousandsofmenwhobuilttherailwaywouldremainaspermanentresidents(Fig. 2.4).Thesemenwouldbeemployedinagriculture(and,inparticular,

Fig.2.4 Griffith’sinteriorrailwayscheme:AvisualizationoftheghostcityofPimbaonGriffiths’ continentalrailway.Pimba’scurrentpopulationislessthan50. Source Montagebytheauthor. BaseimagebyTotajla(https://www.shutterstock.com/image-photo/indianpaci fic-railway-acrossaustralian-outback-453349075?src=Iu_lYcNDfB9Blb0GfyqLRQ-1-6)

222CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.3TheGhostCitiesofaRuralCivilization23

grazing)andotherresource-dependentindustriessuchasmining,aswellasinlocal industriesthatwouldservethelocalpopulation(Idriess 1944;Porter 2003).As Idriessoptimisticallyproclaimed, “asconstructionoftherailwayproceeded,andas thelandwasdividedandimproved,animmenseamountofworkwouldbeprovidedincreatingbuildingsforthecivilpopulation,permanentwater-suppliesand fencing” (Idriess 1944).

Ultimately,thecontinentalscaleandvastexpenseofGriffi ths’ schememeantit didnotgetanyfurtherthanthedrawingboard.Australiahadalreadyputdowna longerstretchofrailwaythananycountryintheworld(inproportiontopopulation),evenwithoutbuildingtheadditional11,000kmoftrackproposedin Griffiths’ scheme(Blainey 1966).Moreover,repatriatedAustraliansoldiers(particularlythoseinternedbytheJapaneseandforcedtobuildtheinfamous “Burma railroad”)wouldhavebeenveryreluctanttoembarkonthemonumentaltaskof buildingavastraillineencirclingcentralAustralia.

2.3.6Idriess’ InteriorLakeCities

Idriess’ (1944)visionoftownsandcitiesinAustralia ’sinteriorwasnotlimitedto thoseenabledbygrandrailschemes.SimilartoHatfield,Idriessbelievedthat “great waterstoragesfarandwidearerequiredinordertoimprovetheclimateand rejuvenateinlandAustralia ” (1944)tosustainasigni ficantsettlement.Tothisend, Idriesspresentedasinglemonolithicschemethathecalled,ingrandioseterms, “the Plan” (Cathcart 2010).HisproposalwastodamQueensland’scoastalriversonthe seawardsideoftheGreatDividingRange.Thiswaterwouldbeconveyedtothedry inlandsideoftheGreatDividingRangebytunnelsandreleasedintotheriverbeds that flowedtowardLakeEyre,aregiontowhichhereferred,inUSstyle,as “the greatlakessystem” (Cathcart 2010).Idriess’svisionofreengineeringthenation’s hydrologicalsystemswas,inpart,toenablethecreationnewcitiesintheinterior. Asheproclaimed:

Australia’scitiesofthefuturewillnotbefoundin fiveorsixspotsonour12,000-mile coastline – theywillstretchcontinuouslyalongtheRiversofthePlains,fromRomatothe MurraymouthandfromHughendentoLakeEyre… OnthefertileplainsaroundLakeEyre … willgrowupagardencity(Idriess 1944)(Figs. 2.5 and 2.6).

Tosupportthismassiveurbanizationprogramthereweretobenewroads, aerodromes,irrigation,powerprojects,aseriesofgreatdamsandpower-houses, factoriesandgreatchemicalandsyntheticplants “distributedalloverthecontinent andnotmerelyalongthecoastsoftheCommonwealth” (Idriess 1944).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.2.5 Idriess’ interiorcities:Idriess’ visionofreengineeringthenation’shydrologicalsystems wasentwinedwithavisionfornewcitiesintheinterior(1944). Source Mapbytheauthor

Fig.2.6 LakeEyreCity:AvisualizationofIdriess’ imaginedgardencityonLakeEyrewithits factoriesandgreatchemicalandsyntheticplants(Idriess 1944). Source Montagebytheauthor. Basedonanimagebyanunknownphotographer(https://www.wilpenapound.com.au/latest-news/ 104/lake-eyre-update march-2017/)

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

242CreatingaRuralCivilization

2.4TheResultsofAttemptstoForgeaRuralCivilization25

2.4.1LandDegradation

WhileBrady’s,Hatfield’sandIdriess’ imaginedcitiesintimefadedinto “ghost cities,” theagriculturaldevelopmentofmarginallandsthathadbeenintendedto supportamassivelyboostedpopulationinmostcaseshadadevastatingeffecton thenation’secologies.Extravagantoverclearingandovergrazingcausedextensive soilerosionandsalinizationandinitiatedthedesertifi cationofmarginallandsin manyregions(Powell 1984).Asaresult,bythe1940sAustraliawassufferingfrom extensiveerosionacross2,500,000km2 ofwhathadbeenproductiveland (Gillanders 2009).

Followingcloselyontheheelsofecologicalcollapsewereagriculturaland economicfailures.Mostoftheagriculturalschemesconceivedinthemaniaof buildingaruralcivilizationresultedineconomicfailuresduetoacombinationof undercapitalization,lackoftrainingandknowledge,andthemarginalnatureof inlandareas(Frost 2004).Thefailedschemesresultedinheavy financialburdens forgovernmentsandindividualsandprovidedacautionarytaleintermofallowing hopetotriumphoverexperience(Powell 1984).

GermanphilosopherFrederickEngelsforesawthisin1883,warning: “Letusnot flatterourselvesovermuchonaccountofourhumanvictoriesovernature.Foreach suchvictorynaturetakesitsrevengeonus” (Gleeson 2010).

2.4.2AContinuedDrifttotheCapitalCities

Despitetheeffortsoffederalandstategovernmentandindividuals,therewasno movementofpopulationawayfromthecapitalcities.Ratherthesmallexisting populationofruralareasincreasinglydriftedtowardthecapitalcities.Asearlyas 1927,theruralpaper TheLeader hadconcludedthatthesubstantialeffortsat decentralizationhadfailed.Astheydecried:

Millionsofpoundshavebeenspentinprovidingrailwaysandotherfacilities,whichwere designedtomakelifeinthecountrymorecongenialbutdespitethatfact,thebulkofthe peopleinruraldistrictsseemtohaveonlyoneaiminlife – toaccumulatesufficientmoney toenablethemtomigratetothecity.Asitismostofthecountrydistrictslosetheiryoung folk,who findlifetheretoodrabbycomparisonwithwhattheyimaginetobeabrightand easylifeinthecity(Davison 2016).

Giventhissoberingassessment,whatlessonscannewcityproponentslearn fromallthisambitiousmisadventure?

2.4TheResultsofAttemptstoForgeaRuralCivilization
julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Thisperiodofendeavoringtocreatearuralcivilizationshouldbeacautionarytale fornewcityproponents,particularlyinrelationtooverestimatingthecarrying capacityoftheinteriorandunderestimatingthetyrannyofdistance,andthelivabilityandattractionofthecapitalcities.

2.5.1OverestimatedPopulation-CarryingCapacity

Themostimportantlessonofthisperiodwastobecognizantofnature’slimits.The failedattempttoreengineertheAustralianlandscapeledtotheunderstandingthat beyonditslimitedfertilecleftsmuchoftheAustralianlandscape “mocks” thevery ideaofclosersettlement(Weller 2001,p.68) anunderstandingthatnewcity proponentsperiodicallyforget,aswewillseelaterinthisbook.Ofcourse,thereare manycitiesaroundtheworldthathavethrivedinaridenvironments;however,the townsandcitiesproposedinthisperiodinAustraliaweretobe,inpart,ruralservice centers,assuchtheirfatedependedonthesuccessoftheadjacentagricultural programs.Withoutthedevelopmentofadjacentagriculturaldistricts,thesenewcity proposalslackedakeyeconomicdrivertoprovidejobsandincome,andassuch, thecitiesinevitablyfailedtomaterialize.

Intime,thedesiretoreengineerhydrologicalsystemsonthescalethatwas requiredtotransformbroadswathesoflandintheinteriordidleadtovastirrigation schemessuchasimaginedbyBrady,Hatfield,andIdriess.Oneexampleisthe mammothSnowyMountainsHydroelectricScheme,whichopenedinthe1970s. However,eventhisgargantuanprojectdidnotyieldanywhereneartheagricultural andsettlementoutcomesthatIdriessandBradyenvisaged.

2.5.2TheTyrannyofDistance

Ithasbeenlongrecognizedthattransportationcostsareafundamentaldeterminant ofthegrowthinpopulationsizeofcities(DurantonandPuga 2013).Totacklethis issue,anumberofthenewcityproponentsadvancedtheideathatairtransport couldovercomethetyrannyofdistancethatotherwiseunderminedthegrowthof regionalcities.Certainly,thisthemeemergesinBrady’sMallacootamodelforthe easternseaboardandHat field’svisionofAliceSpringsasacentralpointtoserve thesurroundingvastagriculturaldistrictsbyhelicopterandairplane.WhileIdriess’ schemereliedonthebetterunderstoodtransportmodeofrailways,thescaleofhis 11,000-kmcontinental-scalerailwaywasunprecedentedinAustraliaandproved completelyunfeasiblefromaneconomicperspective.

2.5KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNewCities(1901–1945)
262CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.5KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNewCities(1901

Duetotheissuesofbothairandrailtravelatthescaleproposed,thedevelopmentoftheindustrialcomponentofalloftheseschemeswasgreatlycurtailedby thedistanceoftheseproposednewcitiestotheportsandmarketsassociatedwith themajorcapitalcities.

Whileintime,remoteAustralianminingoperationshavebecomeservicedbya “fly-in, fly-out” workforcereminiscentofHatfi eld’svision,weshouldbewary aboutembracingnewtransporttechnologiesasacure-allforconnectingthe incrediblesparsityofurbansettlementsdottedacrosstheAustraliancontinent. Proponentsofsuchschemesfacea “chickenandegg” situationinwhichwithout theinfrastructureyoucannotattractthepopulation;andwithoutthepopulation,you cannotattracttheinvestmentrequiredtobuildtheinfrastructure.Asaresult,the populationandtheinvestorswait,andnothinghappens…

2.5.3ImportedCityModels

TheconceptofthegardencityinAustralia,despiterepeatedattempts,failedto catchon,11 especiallyininlanddistricts(IwanickiandJones 2012),withthe obviousexceptionofCanberra.Inpart,thiscanbeexplainedbythenotionthat thegardencityconceptwaslessappealinginharshAustralianconditionsduetothe palpablepresenceof “empty” ruralspaceonthecontinent(Murphy 2009). Howard’sdeclarationthattownandcountry “mustbemarried,andoutofthis joyousunionwillspringanewhope,anewlife,anewcivilization” (Murphy 2009) fellparticularly flatinaridareas.Thepresenceofvastunpeopledtractsoflandwas asourceofconsiderableuneaseandadiffi cultsubstratumwithwhichtoforma “joyousunion.”

Thissituationpointstotheneedforcityformthatrespondstolandscape,both spatialandimagined.Moreover,thegardencitymodel,andits “fullsocietalprogram,” hadlittlehopeofsuccessinAustralia;indeeditwasa “ratherradical manifestoevenforBritain” (Freestone 1982).Asaresult,thereformonasocietal levelyieldeddirectlybythegardencityideainAustraliawaslimited.Theseissues remindusthatweshouldbecautiousaboutadoptingimportedcitymodelsin AustraliathatdonotreconcilethemselveseasilywithAustralia ’soften-aridbiophysicallandscapeandtypicallyconservativeculture(Aitken 1970).

2.5.4TheLivabilityofCoastalCities

Finally,theproponentswhoaimedtoforgearuralcivilizationunderestimatedthe continuinglivabilityofthecapitalcities,andcoastalareasingeneral.Thiswasdue,

11Nonetheless,watereddownversionsofHoward’sgardencitymodel, “gardensuburbs,” proliferatedinAustralia’scapitalcities.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au
–1945)27

Fig.2.7 Australiansuburbia:Theopeningupofsuburbanlivingtothemassesinthecapitalcities tookthe “windoutofthesails” ofthoseproposingruraldecentralizationbygenerallyeliminating the “pushfactor” fromthecapitalcities. Source PhotobyRichardWellerandtheauthor

inpart,toasituationinwhichAustralianurbanreformersdrewheavilyonBritish conceptualizationsofthecityandurbandegeneration(Murphy 2009).Theissue wasthatthenotionoftheunhealthycity,originatinginthecontextof1880s London,wasmoreimaginedthanrealinAustralianconditions(Murphy 2009).12 GeoffreyBoltondescribesthat,inthisrespect,thefailureofAustralianstobe enticedtomovetoruralareasmaybeexplainedbythefactthatmostcitydwellers werecontentwiththeirenvironment(Murphy 2009).Indeed,theopeningupof suburbanopportunitytothemassesintheearlytwentiethcenturycoincidedwith generallygoodhealthandhighlivingstandards.In1905,theinfluentialAmerican cityplanningadvocateFrederickHoweattestedtothissituation:

ThegreatcitiesofAustraliaarespreadoutintothesuburbsinasplendidway.Formiles aboutarebroadroadswithsmallhouses,gardens,andanopportunityfortouchwiththe freer,sweeterlifewhichthecountryoffers(Gleeson 2006)(Fig. 2.7).

12Theunhealthyconditions(i.e.,slumareas)inthecapitalcitiesintimewereaddressednot throughthedecentralizationofpopulationawayfromthesecitiesbutbyfocusedurbanrenewal thataimedtoeliminate “slum” conditionsinsitu.

282CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2.5KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNewCities(1901–1945)29

Viewedinsuchtermstheopeningupofsuburbanlivingtothemassesislikelyto havetakenthewindoutofthesailsofthoseproposingruraldecentralizationby generallyeliminatingthe “pushfactor” fromthecapitalcities.Atthesametime, proponentsofpopulationdecentralizationalsotendedtoromanticizerurallife.In contrast,JeanCraig,asociologistwhosurveyedthecountrytownsofNewSouth Walesintheearly1940s,foundthatthegreatestchallengewasnottheisolationbut thesuffocatinghomogeneityofruralsociety.Asshewrote: “Theruralcommunity isunrelentinginitsdemandsforconformity,wheretheurbancommunitydisplays mereindifferencetotheeccentricitiesofitsmembers” (Davison 2016).

2.6Conclusion

Thischapterscopedthelatenineteenthtomid-twentiethcenturyperiodinwhich Australiansstrovetocreatea “ruralcivilization.” Thefantasythatnourishedthis imaginedcivilizationwasthatAustraliamightonedaysupporta “ruralpopulation ofperhapshundredsofmillionsdespitetheoverwhelmingdominanceofthe existingcapitalcitiesandtheharshrealitiesofitsenvironment” (Murphy 2009). Thefailureofthenewcitiesproposedinthisperiodisacautionarytaleforthose whooverestimatetheinteriorsagriculturalproductivity,aswellasforthosewho underestimatetheenduringtyrannyofdistanceandthelivabilityofthedominant coastalcapitalcities.

References

AitkenD(1970)ThepoliticallikelihoodofnewtownsinAustralia.In:GoldsmithJ,ConnerJ (eds)Towardcitiesofthetwenty-firstcentury:CanberraForum1970proceedings,Canberra, 23May1970.TheRoyalAustralianInstituteofArchitects,TheRoyalPlanningInstitute Anji(2017)LakeEyreupdate March2017.WilpenaPoundResort. https://www.wilpenapound. com.au/latest-news/104/lake-eyre-update march-2017/.Accessed10Jan2018 BabbJ(2016)Remembering ‘populateorperish’:ArthurCalwell.NewsWeekly2972:9 BlaineyG(1966)Thetyrannyofdistance:howdistanceshapedAustralia’shistory BradyE(1918)Australiaunlimited.GeorgeRobertson,Melbourne BradyE,RubinsteinL(1944)Dreamsandrealities.YorkPress,Melbourne BurkeS(1987)ThegardencityideainAustraliabeforethegreatwar BurnsC(1944)Athenshadmorehousingconsciencethanus.TheArgus19(08):2 CathcartM(2010)Thewaterdreamers:theremarkablehistoryofourdrycontinent.Text Publishing,Melbourne CitiesCommission(1973)ReporttotheAustraliangovernment:arecommendednewcities programmefortheperiod1973–1978.AustralianGovernmentPublications,Canberra CroftJ(1983)Idriess,IonLlewellyn(1889–1979).TheAustralianNationalUniversity. http://adb. anu.edu.au/biography/idriess-ion-llewellyn-6786 .Accessed14Dec2017 DavisonG(2003)Fatalattraction?ThelureoftechnologyandthedeclineofruralAustralia1890–2000.TasmanianHistStud8(2):40

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

DavisonG(2016)Citydreamers:theurbanimaginationinAustralia.NewSouth,Sydney DepartmentofEnvironmentHaCD(1976)Backgroundandapproachestodecentralisationpolicy inAustralia.DepartmentofEnvironment,HousingandCommunityDevelopment,Canberra DurantonG,PugaD(2013)Thegrowthofcities

FreestoneR(1982)ThegardencityideainAustralia.GeogrRes20(1):24–48

FreestoneR(2013)Backtothefuture.In:BolleterJ,WellerR(eds)MadeinAustralia:thefuture ofAustraliancities.UniversityofWesternAustraliaPress,Perth,pp236–243

FrenchM(1983)Griffiths,AlfredAtherton(1879–1948).TheAustralianNationalUniversity. http://adb.anu.edu.au/biography/griffiths-alfred-atherton-7051 .Accessed14Dec2017

FrostW(2004)Australiaunlimited?Environmentaldebateintheageofcatastrophe,1910–1939. EnvironHist285–303

GillandersA(2009)Mirageoftheinlandsea:theBradfieldScheme.JRAustHistSoc95:38–51

GleesonB(2006)Wakingfromthedream:towardsurbanresilienceinthefaceofsuddenthreat. GriffithUniversityUrbanResearchProgram

GleesonB(2010)Lifeboatcities.UNSWPress,Sydney HancockL(1979)WakeupAustralia.EJDwyer,Sydney HatfieldW(1944)Australiareclaimed.CumberlandNewspapersLimited,Parramatta HowardE(1902)Gardencitiesoftomorrow:beingtheThirdEditionof “Tomorrow:aPeaceful PathtoRealReform”.S.Sonnenschein&Company,Limited,London IdriessI(1944)OnwardAustralia:developingacontinent.AngusandRobertson,Sydney InglisK(1979)Bean,CharlesEdwin(1879–1968).TheAustralianNationalUniversity. http://adb. anu.edu.au/biography/bean-charles-edwin-5166 .Accessed14Dec2017 IwanickiI,JonesD(2012)Learningfromaridplanninganddesignhistoryandpractice:from WoomeratocreatingthenewRoxbyDownscommunities.In:PIA2012:Planningfora SunburntCountry:Buildingresilientcommunitiesthroughplanning:Proceedingsofthe PlanningInstituteofAustralia2012NationalCongress,2012.[PIA],pp1–19

JonesB(2001)Populateorperish?TheSydneyPapers13(3):43–47

MacLachlanI,HorsleyJ(2015)Newtowninthebush:planningknowledgetransferandthe designofKwinana,WesternAustralia.JPlanHist14(2):112–134

McGregorR(2013)Developingthenorth,defendingthenation?TheNorthernAustralia DevelopmentCommittee,1945–1949.AustJPolitHist59(1):33–46

McGregorR(2016)Thedivisivenorth.In:Environment,race,andnationhoodinAustralia. Springer,Berlin,pp183–201

MiramsS(2012) ‘TheattractionsofAustralia’:EJBradyandthemakingofAustraliaUnlimited. AustHistStud43(2):270–286

MurphyK(2009) ‘Themodernideaistobringthecountryintothecity’:Australianurban reformersandtheidealofrurality,1900–1918.RuralHist20(1):119–136

NationalCentreofBiography(2017)Australiandictionaryofbiography.TheAustralianNational University. http://adb.anu.edu.au/.Accessed14Dec2017

NeutzeG(1974)ThecasefornewcitiesinAustralia.UrbanStud11(3):259–275

ParisC(1994)NewpatternsofurbanandregionaldevelopmentinAustralia:demographic restructuringandeconomicchange.IntJUrbanRegRes18(4):555–572

PorterM(2003)Theeconomicperformanceofregions.RegStud37(6–7):549–578

PottsA(2003)Thepowerofthecityindefiningthenationalandregionalineducation.Reactions againsttheurban:universitiesinregionalAustralia.PaedagogicaHistorica39(1):135–152 PowellJ(1984)Hometruthsandlarrikinprophets.AustralianUnlimited:theinterwaryears. PopulateandPerish:thestressesofpopulationgrowthinAustralia,Fontana,Sydney,pp47–79 RushmanG(1976)TowardsnewcitiesinAustralia.TownPlanRev47(1):4

SerleG(1983)Hatfield,William(1892–1969).TheAustralianNationalUniversity. http://adb.anu. edu.au/biography/hat field-william-6598 .Accessed14Dec2017 ShutterstockIndian-PacificRailwayacrosstheAustralianoutback.Shutterstock. https://www. shutterstock.com/image-photo/indianpaci fic-railway-across-australian-outback-453349075? src=Iu_lYcNDfB9Blb0GfyqLRQ-1-6 .Accessed10Jan2018

302CreatingaRuralCivilization julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

TaceyD(2009)Edgeofthesacred:jung,psyche,earth.DaimonVerlag,Einsiedeln,Switzerland WebbJ(1979)Brady,EdwinJames(1869–1952).TheAustralianNationalUniversity. http://adb. anu.edu.au/biography/brady-edwin-james-5335 .Accessed14Dec2017 WellerR(2001)TheNationalMuseum,Canberra,anditsGardenofAustralianDreams.Studiesin theHistoryofGardens&DesignedLandscapes21(1):66–84

References 31 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Chapter3 DecentralizationFever

Abstract Thischaptercoverstheperiodbetween1970and1975whenitappeared likelythatAustraliawouldbeginanational-scaleprogramofpopulationdecentralizationandnewcitybuildingundertheGoughWhitlamFederalLabor Government.In1972,thenewlyestablishedDepartmentofUrbanandRegional Developmentactivelypursuedplanstodevelopthreeeffectivelynewcities: MonartoinSouthAustralia,Bathurst–OrangeinNewSouthWalesandAlbury–WodongaontheVictoria–NewSouthWalesborder.Proponentsintendedthatthese newcitieswouldalleviatepressureonthecapitalcitiesthattheyconsidered overcrowdedanddeterioratinginbothaestheticsandefficiency.Complementing thisfederalgovernmenteffort,atthestatelevel,wasplanningtoestablishnew populationcentersinthePilbararegionfortheWesternAustralianstategovernment.Thischaptertracesthenewandboostedcitypropositionsthatemergedinthis periodandidentifieskeybarrierstotheirimplementationsuchasthecontinued livabilityofexistingstatecapitalcitiesandcentralizingeconomicforces.

Keywords Newcities Decentralization DepartmentofUrbanandRegional Development GoughWhitlam ThePilbara Albury–Wodonga Monarto Shaygap

3.1TheCaseforDecentralization

Thischapterconcernstheperiodbetween1970and19751,asecondaperiodin Australianhistorywhenthereappearedtobeaseriouspossibilitythatthenation would “embarkonalargescaleprocessofnewcitybuilding” (Freestoneetal.

1The1970–1975periodwasdefinedbythe “TowardstheCitiesofthe21stCenturycongress” convenedinCanberrain1970,whichconstituteda “landmarkeventen-routetotheWhitlam Government’sunprecedentedprogramtoestablishnewcitiesinAustralia” from1972to1975 (Freestoneetal. 2016,p.1).TheGovernor-General,SirJohnKerr,dismissedtheWhitlam Governmentin1975inrelationtoallegedgovernmentscandalsandastrugglingeconomy.

© TheAuthor(s)2018

J.Bolleter, TheGhostCitiesofAustralia,SpringerBriefsinGeography, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-319-89896-4_3

33 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

2016,p.2).UnderGoughWhitlam ’s 2 FederalLaborGovernment(1972–1975),the DepartmentofUrbanandRegionalDevelopment(DURD)3 wascreatedto “institutionallymanagethebuiltenvironment” (Oakley 2004,p.299),especiallyin regardtotheproblemsofexistingcitiesandthedevelopmentofnewregional growthareas(Rushman 1976,p.4).(TheDURDwasoriginallygoingtobe DUD-minustheword “regional”!).Thiswasadramaticshift,inthatitcameafter morethan20yearsoffederalnoninvolvementinthemattersofcities,suchissues havingtraditionallybeenlefttothevariousstategovernments(Rushman 1976, p.4).AccordingtoDURDstaff,suchfragmentedstategovernmentresponsesto cityplanningandmanagement(whenviewedfromafederalperspective)waspartly toblameforacrisisinAustraliancities(Oakley 2004,p.302).

WhiletheDURDhadashortlife thedefeatofthefederalWhitlam Governmentin1975heraldingitsdemise itisunequaledintermsoftheeffort appliedtoachievingdecentralizationoutcomes.Thisisinrespecttobothboosting selectedtownstocitystatus,suchasAlbury–Wodonga,Bathurst,andOrange,as wellasproposingcompletelynewcitiessuchasMonarto(Freestone 2013).Inthis chapter,theseandothernewandboostedcityproposalsareexploredintermsof howtheyfailedtoattracttherequiredinvestmentandplannedpopulation(Gleeson 2010,p.61).ThechapteralsoexploresconcomitantWesternAustralianstate governmentinvestigationsintocreatinganewtowndistributedalongahigh-speed transportspineinthePilbararegioninAustralia’snorthwest,planning,inspiredby relatedeffortsatthefederallevel.

Thisprogramofpopulationdecentralizationwasjusti fiedusingmanyofthe sameargumentsasthosegivenintheearlytwentiethcentury,discussedinthe previouschapters.

3.1.1AnUrbanCrisisintheCapitalCities

Inthelate1960s,onceagain,theperceptionthatAustralia’s “sordid” capitalcities wereinastateofcrisiswaswidespreadamongstcityplanners,designers,and administrators(GoldsmithandConner 1970,p.xi;Llewellyn-Smith 1970,p.86). Thecrisisencompassedallegedurbanugliness,overcrowding,pathology,congestion,pollution,societalstratification,andevenpotentialvulnerabilityinwar issuessharedwithmajorcitiesaroundtheworld.TheUnitedNations,ina1970 reportconsideredthatthe “urbancrisis” wassecondonlytotheproblemofkeeping worldpeace(citedinCheung 1972,p.12).IntheU.S.,thisurbancrisiswasseenas requiringdramaticinterventions includingproposalsthatthe “overgrownurban

2GoughWhitlam(1916–2014)wastheLaborprimeministerofAustraliafrom1972to1975. Despiteitsshortterm,theWhitlamGovernmentimplementedasignificantnumberofnewprogramsandpolicychanges.

3TomUrenheadeduptheDURDasMinisterforUrbanandRegionalDevelopment1972–1975.

343DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.1TheCaseforDecentralization35

complexmustbeselectivelydismantledanddispersedtocuretheillsofthe megalopolis” (Spilhaus 1967,p.710).

SomeAustraliancommentatorsevenwentasfarastoarguethat,fromanational pointofview,itmightbedesirabletoencouragecontinuedconcentrationofpopulationandeconomicactivitiesinthelargecities “sincetheyarealreadysucha mess … theymightaswellbewrittenoffaltogethertosavetherestofAustralia ” (Neutze 1974,p.263).

3.1.2PopulationOverconcentration

OneofthemostdamningcritiquesofAustralia ’scapitalcitieswasthattheywere expressionsoftheoverconcentrationofAustralia’spopulation.Thisrelatedtothe perceptionthatAustralia,incomparisonwithothermodernindustrialsocieties, experiencedanalarminglyhigh “territorialimbalanceinpopulationandeconomic opportunity” betweenurbanandruralareas(Lonsdale 1972,p.321).Compounding thisperceivedissuewereofficialpopulationprojectionsthatAustralia’spopulation wouldalmostdoublebytheendofthecentury,reaching23million(Cities Commission 1973,p.18).

Theperceptionofanoverconcentrationofpeopleincitiesstemmedfromthe beliefthatbythetimeacityreachesapopulationof2,000,000mostofthe advantagesthatderivefromsheersizehavebeenexhausted(Neutze 1974,p.265). Whiletherewere,ofcourse,someofferingswhicharegenerallyonlyavailablein largecities,likeoperahousesandstockexchanges,forexample(Neutze 1974, p.265),itwasgenerallyfeltthattheseweretheexceptiontotherule.Inthisrespect, thefederalCitiesCommissionregardedthat,themajoradvantagesofalargecity, withtheminimumofdisadvantages,couldexistwithapopulationofbetween approximately100,000and500,000people… (CitiesCommission 1973,p.21).

3.1.3DeterioratingEnvironments

DecentralizationproponentsincreasinglybelievedAustraliancitieswerenotjust overcrowdedbutalsodeterioratingwithrespecttotheirbuiltenvironments(Cities Commission 1973,p.13).SomeoftheAustraliancharacterizationsofurban deteriorationinthisperiodhadtheiroriginsintheU.S.Aperceptionthatthelarge Americancitieswererottenplacestolivehadsweptthenationinthemidtolate 1960s.IanMcHarg,arespectedplanner,fueledsuchsentiments,proclaiming: themoderncity inhibitsmanasanorganism,manasasocialbeing,manasaspiritual being,andthatitdoesnotevenofferadequateminimumconditionsforphysiologicalman. Indeedthemoderncityofferstheleasthumanephysicalenvironmentknowntohistory (Lonsdale 1971,p.118).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Inalessemotivetone,someAustraliancriticsbegantoidentifyapervasive Australianurbanugliness.Lonsdaleregardedsuburbansprawlas “typically unplanned,uncoordinated,andun-aesthetic” andboulevardswere “clutteredwitha mishmashofarchitecturalnightmaressuchasColonelSanders’ friedchicken emporiums…” (Lonsdale 1971,p.118).Moreover,criticsbelievedthisformof decaywasgrowing.Bookslike “TheAustralianUgliness” (Boyd 2010)and “AustralianOutrage” (GazzardandPotts 1966)tabledlow-density,car-oriented stripdevelopment,andproblematicfringesuburbsasbeingemblematicofthe issuesofAustralia’scapitalcities(Freestone 2013,p.238).

3.1.4Pathologies

Linkinglargecitiestovariousformsofpathologywascommon,suchaswas discussedinthepreviouschapter.OfthesituationintheU.S.cities,McHarg explainedthat “theheartofthecityistheheartofpathologyandthereisagreat concentrationofalltypesofpathologyencirclingit” (McHarg 1992,p.193).Some writersassociatedphysicalandmentalhealthdirectlywithaphysicaldensityof population.Thisargumentwasbasedonstudiesofthedisturbingeffectsofovercrowdingonrats, fish,lemmings,andlargemammals(Alonso 1970,p.13).While therewasno findingofcomparableeffectswithrespecttohumanpopulations,this didnotstoptheidentifi cationofsimilardynamicsincities(Alonso 1970,p.13).As Spilhausobserved: “Ifweconsiderthatanyexcessthatisharmfultodecentlivingis apollutant,thentheprimepollutantonearthistoomanypeople” (Spilhaus 1967, p.710).

TheAustralianfederalCitiesCommissionin1971tabledhealthdatathatconfirmedsuchobservations.Thisdataregardingtheadmissionofpsychiatricpatients inVictoriashowedthatamanlivinginacitywasthreetimesmorelikelytobe admittedforalcoholismandovertwotimesmorelikelytobeadmittedforpersonalitydisordersthanamanlivinginruralareas(CitiesCommission 1973,p.22). Suchdataleadthecommissiontoconcludethatlargecitieshavehigherpercapita ratesforphysiologicalandmentalillness,crimeandjuveniledelinquency,and socialstressthanthenationalincidenceofthesefactors.

Whilesuchassessmentsseemedalarmistinrelationtothelowdensity,suburban spreadofAustraliancities,localcommentatorsdidmakeobservationsthatpollution oftheairandwatercoursesinAustralia ’scapitalcitieshadreacheddeplorable levelsandthatthecentralizationofpopulationwascertainlyamajorfactor (Lonsdale 1971,p.141;Widdows 1974,p.196).Again,whilecriticsincreasingly portrayedcitiesasbeingadangertophysicalhealth,theywerealsoregardedasa threattocivility—”morality,delinquency,lawandorderallbeingregardedasbeing worseinthecity” thaninruralareas(Widdows 1974,p.201).

363DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.1.5Congestion

Beyondsuchgloomyassessments,Australia’scapitalcitieswerealsoregardedas declininginefficiency(Alonso 1970,p.6).Evidenceofthiswasincreasingtraffic congestionandpunishingcommutesfromoutersuburbs,whichbecamerelatively standardfeaturesofAustralia’scapitalcitiesfromthe1970son(Lonsdale 1971, p.118).Thiscongestionhinderedboththedailycommutetoworkandtheabilityto escapethecityonweekends.AsNeutze(1974,p.263)explained: “Someofthe worstcongestioninmanycitiesresultsfromSundaydrivingtopopularrecreation areas.” Inatypicallypragmaticmanner,theAustralianInstituteofSurveyorsalso regardedthatdecentralizationwasaworthygoalinthatitcouldleadtothe “inexpensiveprovisionofcarparking…” (1972,p.1).

3.1.6SocietalSegmentation

Arguably,thetrafficcongestiondescribedwashavingadisproportionateimpacton fringe-dwellingsegmentsofthecommunity,inparticular,outersuburbanresidents. HughStretton,inlinewithsuchassessments,venturedtheideathatthepoorare moredisadvantagedrelativetotherichinlargecitiesthaninsmallertownsand cities(Neutze 1974,p.267).Inrelationtothissituation,itwasfeltthatbigcities “imposerole-segmentedcontactsonpeopleandkeepthemfromknowingeach otheraswholepersons” (Alonso 1970,p.12).Criticsbelievedthatduetothescale andimpersonalityofthecity, “peoplecannotunderstandtheforcesthataffecttheir destiniesandconsequentlyexperiencealienation” (Alonso 1970,p.12).Incontrast, itwasperceivedthatsmallernewtownsprovideasinglefocusfordwelling, education,employment,shopping,recreation,andcivicactivities,andthusthey “afforddeepandenduringrelationshipsaswellasacomprehensibleenvironmentin whichtheindividualmayparticipateandwhichhemay,toadegree,control” (Alonso 1970,p.12).

3.1.7VulnerabilityinWar

Finally,commentatorsbelievedreducingourvulnerabilitytoaerialbombardment wasalsodependentonadecentralizedsettlementpatterncomprisingadispersed networkofsmallertownsandcities.In1940,the “NationalCatholicRural Movement,RuralLife” magazineclaimedthat “thebombingplanewithitsawful powersofdestructionshowssoclearlythefallacyofconcentratingourresourcesin bigcities” (Kilmartin 1973,p.37).TheAustralianscientistMarcusOliphant,witha

3.1TheCaseforDecentralization37 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

nucleararmsraceinfullswing,advocatedthatAustraliashouldalsobebuilding newcitiestoreducetheriskfromatomicattack(Freestone 2013,p.237).4

3.2DecentralizationastheAnswertoCitiesinCrisis

DecentralizationproponentsintheU.S.believedsiphoningpeoplefromthemajor citiesintoneworboostedcitiesinregionalareaswastheanswertothisurbancrisis, initsvariousmanifestations.AsAthelstanSpilhausargued:

…ifhalfthepresent200,000,000peopleintheUnitedStateswerelivingin800citieswith apopulationofa250,000each,andifthesecitieswerescatteredevenlyacrosstheUnited States,wewouldnothavethepollution,thetrafficcongestion,theriots,andmanyofthe otherillsthatdevelopwhencitiesbecometoolarge(1967,p.711).

TheAmericanAssociationfortheAdvancementofScienceregardedthaturban renewalofslum-likeurbanareasintheexistingmajorcitieswherepathologywas concentratedwasakintoAspirin,which “mayrelieveaheadacheandbringdowna fever” butwillstillleavethepatientsick.Thediseasewassimplyanoverconcentrationofpeopleinasmallarea(1972,p.709).Spilhausarguedsuchwerethe issuesoflargeU.S.citiesthat “wemustlookatsolutionsthatenvisageurban dispersal,andifwearetodisperseintonewplannedcities,anationalexperimental citiesprogramisanurgentmust” (1967,p.715).Theexperimentationthatoccurred innewcitiesorlaboratories,itwasargued,couldacttothe “diffusedesigninnovation” backtoexistingcities(Alonso 1970,p.15).TheAmericanAssociationfor theAdvancementofScience,indramaticfashion,evenwentasfarastocallforthe completeeliminationofthecity.Astheyurged:

Whycannotpeoplelivewherevertheywishandcongregateelectronically?Sight,sound, thesenseoftouch,and,inthenearfuture,evensmell,canbetransmittedanywhereinthe world.Many … businessandculturaladvantagesofthecitycanbere-createdequallyina studyhighintheRockyMountainsorinanartist’sstudiooutWashingtononCapeCod (AmericanAssociationfortheAdvancementofScience 1972,p.709).

GiventheswaythattheU.S.hadonAustraliaatthispointinhistory,these alarmistcharacterizationsanddramaticpropositionsundoubtedlyinfluencedthe concurrentdebatearoundpopulationoverconcentrationanddecentralizationin Australia.Certainly,respectedlocalcommentatorssuchasMaxNeutzebelieved thatdecentralizationcouldactasacure-allfortheproblemsofAustralia’scities, alleviatingsocietalsegregation,congestionandpollution,improvehousing affordabilityandprovidejobs(Neutze 1974,p.270).

4However,withrapidly “improving” nuclearweaponsabletodevastatevastareas,thisclaim begantolosesomeofitsforce(Neutze 1974,p.260).

383DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.2DecentralizationastheAnswertoCitiesinCrisis39

3.2.1TheExemplarofCanberra

Fuelingthepropositionoftheneworboostedcitiesinthe1970–1975periodin AustraliawasalsotheapparentsuccessofCanberra,whichhadreachedapopulationofalmost100,000.DesignedbyWalterBurleyGriffinandhiswifeMahony Griffin,Canberrahadbeentheproductofadesigncompetitionheldin1912fora newfederalcapitalcity.5 Inthelate1960s,Canberra’spublicimagehadchanged fromthatofanexpensive,sparselyinhabitedmonumentintosomethingofasuccess.AsGraemeNeutzeenthused,Canberrahadbecome “anexemplarfor decentralizationinAustralia” anda “goodexampleofwhatplanningcanachieve” (1974,p.267).Thiswasadramaticshiftinthepublicopiniongiventhat,untilthe 1950s,Canberrawaslaughedoffasa “sheeppaddockandlefttolanguish, incompleteandunloved” (Ellem 2014,p.107).

GoughWhitlam,however,wholivedinCanberrainthe1920sand30sduringits initialconstructionphases,saw “theprocessesbywhichasuccessfulnewcity mightcomeintobeing,” anexperiencethatwasobviouslyformative(Freestone etal. 2016,p.3).Ithadbeenlongconsideredthatthenewfederalcapitalwould pointthewaytowardtheplanningandcreationofother “trulysplendidcitiesbythe shoresofthelonelyPaci fic” (Reade 1912,p.7).Inlinewithsuchthinking,Whitlam proposedthat,ifelectedasprimeminister,hewouldbuildafurther fiveoreven10 newCanberras atleastonenewcityforeachAustralianstate(Wanna 1982, p.260).Thesecitieswereinparttobegardencities.In1971,Whitlamevokedthe “threemagnets” rhetoricofEbenezerHowardfrom70yearspreviously:

Bycreatingnewcitiesareashithertoruralwecanbringtheconvenienceoftownlifetothe farmerandthespaciousnessofthecountrysidetohisurbancompatriot Creationofcities isthenewdecentralization(Freestoneetal. 2016,p.4).6

ThefollowingsectionreviewstheWhitlamGovernment’sattempts,throughthe DURD,towrestlethesenewcitiesintobeing.

3.3TheDURD’sGhostCitiesofDecentralization

In1972,theDURDdevelopedaseriesofstudyareasforthe “growthcenters” program,whichwasaplanningresponsetotheperceivedcrisisinAustralia’s capitalcities,andtheanticipateddoublingofAustralia’spopulationby2000.These includedTownsville,theFitzroyregion(includingRockhamptonandGladstone),

5TheGriffin’swinningplanforCanberradrewon “theimpressivestyleandcivicemphasisofCity Beautifulplanning” aswellasadoptinga “GardenCity” approachtoresidentialareas(Ellem 2014, p.112).

6Townplanner,andurbanthinker,PatrickTroy(AO)ghostwrotemanyofWhitlam’s planning-relatedspeeches.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

theMoretonregion(includingBrisbane),Gosford–Wyong,HoldsworthyCampbelltown,Bathurst-Orange,Albury–Wodonga,thePortPhillipregion,the Tamarregion,Monarto,Albany,Bunbury,Salvador(Perth’snorth-westcorridor), Geraldton,thePilbararegionandDarwin(Fig. 3.1).Outofthisprocess,Monartoin SouthAustralia,Bathurst-OrangeinNewSouthWalesandAlbury–Wodongaon theVictoria–NewSouthWalesborderwereselectedforfurtherplanningand investment(Cocks 1992,p.215).7

TheDURD’s “growthcenters” comprisedtwobasiccitytypes.Firstwasnewor boostedsatellitecities8 developedwithinthe “influenceofanexistingmetropolitan areabutasaself-containedentityratherthanametropolitandormitoryarea.” Geelong,anexistingportcity50kmfromMelbourne,wascitedasanexample (Rushman 1976,p.11).Secondwasboostedregionalcities9 “locatedatasignificantdistancefromametropoliswithexistingresourcesorthepotentialtoservethe regionwhichsurroundsit” (Rushman 1976,p.11).Albury–Wodonga,onthe borderbetweenVictoriaandNewSouthWales,wasgivenasanexample(Rushman 1976,p.11).The(expressed)preferencewasforboostedregionalcitiesthatcould reachapopulationofbetween100,000and500,000,arangewithinwhichitwas consideredthatsignificantdisadvantagesofthebigcitywereunlikelytoarise,yet manyoftheadvantagesofthebigcitywouldbeachieved(Rushman 1976,p.11).It wasconsideredthatboostedregionalcitiesintimecouldbecome “themothercity ofasystemofcities” (Freestone 1982,p.44).10 TheseproposedpolycentricstructureswerereminiscentofEbenezerHoward’spolycentricgardencitynetworks a constellationofmedium-sizedcenters,separatedbygenerousopenspaces (Freestone 1982,p.44).

3.3.1Albury–Wodonga

Albury–Wodongawasthe flagshipprojectoftheDURD’sregionalgrowthcenter strategy.Priortoselectionintothegrowthcentersprogram,AlburyandWodonga wereaverage-sizedtownsastridetheNewSouthWalesandVictorianborder,a situationthatprovidedausefulexcuseforfederalgovernmentinvolvement.The Albury–Wodongasitewaslocatedonasubstantialriverdividingthetwostatesbut alsoatthepointofachangeofterrainbetweenmountainouscountrytothe southeastandGreatPlainstothewestandnorth theMelbourne–Sydneymain roadandrailroutesfollowedthisdividethroughAlburyandWodonga.Benefi tsof

7TheDURDaimedtoavoidscattereddecentralization(suchaswasdiscussedinchapter2)by selectingalimitednumberofconsolidatedgrowthareas.

8TheDURDreferredtothesecitiesas “metropolitangrowthcentres.”

9TheDURDreferredtothesecitiesas “regionalgrowthcentres.”

10TheideaofapolycentricsettlementsystemappearedintheplansforBathurst-Orange(witha newintermediatetownofVictoria)andAlbury–Wodonga(withthenew “greenfield” townsof ThurgoonaandMiddleCreek/Baranduda).

403DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.3.1 Afederalplanforcities:ThismapshowstheDepartmentofUrbanandRegional Development’sproposedstudyareasforthe1972–1975growthcentersprogram.Outofthis process,MonartoinSouthAustralia,Bathurst-OrangeinNewSouthWalesandAlbury–Wodonga ontheVictoria–NewSouthWalesborderwerechosen. Source MapbyGordonRushmantraced bytheauthor 3.3TheDURD

thesitealsoincludedproximitytotheHumeWeir,averylargereservoirjust upstreamontheMurrayRiverwithpotentialforrecreationaluse(Rushman 1976, p.18).

Basedonaprojectedpopulationof300,000peoplefromabaseof45,000,itwas clearfromtheoutsetthattheAlbury–Wodongaregionalgrowthcenterproject wouldrequireanimmenseinvestmentinpromotion,planning,administrationand management(Kilmartin 1973,p.37).Reflectingthis,Albury–Wodongawasto attractover60%ofthe$164millioningrowthcenterfundingbetween1973and 1977(Freestone 2013,p.240).

Theeconomicdriversfortheprojectwereinitiallyunclear,reflectingthefact thatsuchprojectshadoverlyconcentratedonphysicalplanningtotherelative exclusionofeconomicconsiderations(MatthewsinPennay 2005,p.334).Intime, Albury–Wodongawasproposedasadistributioncenterservingnationaland internationalmarkets,aninternationaltraininganddevelopmentcenter,an accommodationcenterinrespectoftourism,boardingschools,healthfarms,and camps,and finallyacenterforselectedagriculturalandmanufacturingactivities (includingbuildingcars)(Pennay 2005,p.179).

’sGhostCitiesofDecentralization41 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Thecity’surbanformwasproposedintheAustralianlow-densitytradition; however,theplanhadcharacteristicsreminiscentofsomeofthelargerBritishnew townssuchasMiltonKeynes,designedinthe1960s(Rushman 1976,p.18).The similaritiesincludedthelinearsequenceofmajorsettlementsconstitutingthenew city,apublictransitroutelinkingthecentersofthecomponentsettlements,parallel majorroads,anda finergridofroadsinnewdevelopmentareas(Rushman 1976,p.18) (Fig. 3.2).ThefactthatAlbury–Wodonga’sformechoedBritishnewtownsnodoubt reflectedtheinfluenceofBritishplanningidealsinthisperiod.Moreover,itwasan attempttoemulatetherelativesuccessoftheBritishnewtownmovement,whichwas regardedatthetimetobeatriumphofBritishplanning(Berkley 1973,p.479).

GiventheDURDhadashortlife,ongoingfederalgovernmentsupportfor boostingAlbury–Wodongadwindledoverthenextdecades.Albury–Wodonga continuedtogrowatareasonablerateandnowhasapopulationof80,000.Todayit isapleasanttownbutbynomeansacityofsignifi cance.Inrelationtosuch assessments,in1992theProductivityCommissionmadetheobservationthat,with respecttoAlbury–Wodonga,theDURDhadachievedlittleotherthanthewasteof agreatdealofmoney(Pennay 2005,p.332).

Fig.3.2 Albury–Wodongagrowthcenterplanning:TheplanningforAlbury–Wodongahad similaritiestoBritishnewtownsofthe1960sincludingthelinearsequenceofmajorsettlements andamasstransitroutelinkingthecentersofthecomponentsettlements. Source PlanbyGordon Rushmantracedbytheauthor

Hume Weir Floodplain Albury Wodonga Railway MurrayRiver 3km
423DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.3TheDURD

3.3.2Monarto

OnthesameMurrayRiverthat flowsthroughAlbury–Wodonga,yet1000kmto thewest,wasthesiteoftheproposednewSouthAustraliansatellitecitycalled “Monarto,” namedafteralate-nineteenth-centuryindigenouswoman(Rushman 1976,p.20;Walkeretal. 2015,p.30).LikeAlbury–Wodonga,theMonartosite hadthemaininterstateroadandraillinkspassthroughit inthiscase,between AdelaideandMelbourne;however,itwassubstantiallyclosertoacapitalcity, beingonly50kmeastofAdelaide.Nonetheless,itwasphysicallyseparatedfrom AdelaidebytheMountLoftyRanges(Walkeretal. 2015,p.21)(Fig. 3.1).

WithinSouthAustralia,Monartowasconsideredtobeofgreatimportance,asit wasprojectedtobecomethesecondlargestcityinthestateandaviableregional alternativetoAdelaide(Rushman 1976,p.20).Fast-pacedpopulationgrowthand therelatedthreatstothequalityofurbanlifeintheotherwisepleasantandsedate cityofAdelaideweregivenasthemajorofficialreasonsforMonarto’sinauguration.Indeed,Adelaidehadexperiencedapopulationgrowthrateinexcessof3% perannumintheearly1960sandMonartowasplannedtoabsorbupto180,000 peoplefromAdelaide’sgrowthasit,itself,builtuptoaprojectedpopulationofup to200,000bytheendofthecentury(Rushman 1976,p.20;Wanna 1982,p.262). ItwasarguedthatwithoutsuchasatellitecitytolessenpressureonAdelaide,the capitalcitywouldreach “undesirableandunmanageableproportions” asitspopulationballoonedtoaprojected1,500,000in2000(Wanna 1982,p.262)and descendedintoa “congested,smog-shroudedmegalopolis” (Walkeretal. 2015, p.21).Towardoffthisemergingsituation,theSouthAustralianstategovernment haddesignatedMonartoasametropolitangrowthcenter(CitiesCommission 1973, p.42)andtheMonartoDevelopmentCommission(MDC)wasgiventhewildly ambitioustaskofcreatingthenewcityby1980(Walkeretal. 2015,p.22).

SouthAustralianPremierDonDunstan,11 stateallyofthefederalWhitlam Government,hadaviewthatthecityshouldbeadaptedtothetoughenvironment12 ofitssiteandmoregenerallytotheAustralianwayoflife.Asplanningand preliminarydesignproceededfrom1972to1975,thelandscapepotentialofthe city’sselectedsitebecamecentraltoitsconception(Walkeretal. 2015,p.20). Dunstanimploredin1973:

ItwillprobablybeunlikeanyothercityinAustraliainitsdesign… Anewvisionofthe Australiancity … Itwillbethe firstcitytounderstandthebeautyandenvironmental advantageofAustraliannative flora … acityinwhichpeoplewill findthatamuchlower scaleofwaterconsumptionorworkisneededintheirparks,streets,courtyardsandplay areas,becausethetrees,shrubs,plantsandgrassesbelongtothelandtheygrowin(Walker etal. 2015,p.21).

11DonDunstanwasaLaborpoliticianandpremierofSouthAustraliabetween1970and1979. 12Monarto’sclimatewasextreme,thesitebeingpronetobelow-zerotemperaturesinwinterand heatwavesofover40degreesCelsiusinsummer(Walkeretal. 2015,p.22).

’sGhostCitiesofDecentralization43 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

DesignconsultantsBorisKazanskiandtheBritishplanning firmShanklandCox translatedthisvisionintoaconceptplanforMonarto(Walkeretal. 2015,p.22). Thebackboneoftheconceptplanswasanopen-spacesystembasedonexisting seasonalcreeks(RockyGullyandPreamimmacreeks),resultingingenerousgreen corridorsforbothwildlifemovementandhumanrecreation.Theconfluenceofthe creeksystemscoincidedwithacentralarea,taggedthe “heartland”(Walkeretal. 2015,p.23).Thevariedlandformsinassociationwiththetwocreeksandremnant vegetationofferedtheopportunitytocreateacentralparklandof “distinctive beauty” thatcouldgiveMonartoa “uniquelyAustralianimage” (MonartoPlanning StudiesinWalkeretal. 2015,p.23).Transportationroutestooktheircuesfromthe hydrologyandopen-spaceframeworkandalignedwiththeeast–westpatternofthe site’snaturalfeatures(Walkeretal. 2015,p.23).

AccordingtotheMDC’s “propaganda” pressreleasesof1975,thedesignof Monartoitselfwastogeneratea “beautifulcity” soasto “orchestrateniceandclean economicprogresstocomplementthelifestylequalityofadisparatemiddleclass” (Wanna 1982,p.262).AsWannaexplained:

Monartowasnottobedisfiguredwithdark,satanicmillsbutcomputerterminals;itwasto havenodilapidatedhousingestatesbutpalatialtownhouses,noinner-cityfreewaysbut endless,leisurelycyclepaths;itwasnotintendedtoprovidedecenthousingfortheneedy butimmaculateresidencesforcivilbureaucrats(1982,p.265)(Fig. 3.3).

PremierDunstantoldapressconferencein1974that,unliketheAdelaide satellitecityofElizabethestablishedinthe1950stosatisfythelaborneedsof GeneralMotors(Wanna 1982,p.265),itwouldnotberelianton “onemammoth industry” butrather “haveavarietyofmanufacturingandcommercial,academic, scientificandgovernmentventures,” withaparticularfocuson “tertiaryindustries” (Walkeretal. 2015,p.21).Moreover,itwasprojectedthatsupplyingprovisions, materials,andservicesfortheanticipatedapproximately200,000newresidents wouldstimulatebothMonarto’sandAdelaide’slocalindustries(Wanna 1982, p.264).

Whenpeopleraiseddoubtsovertheproject,abarrageofintensivepublic relationsmaterialwasavailabletoassist(Wanna 1982,p.263).Thisincluded informationpamphlets,glossybrochures,posters,exhibitions,propagandakits,and otherbooklets,allofwhichappearedwithregularity.Thesepublicationsvariedin quality.TheMDC’s “mostexpensivepublicationwasthe48pageannualreport whichincludedcolorphotographsofMonarto fi elds,rocks,oldbuildings,abird takingofffromafenceandahorse” (Wanna 1982,p.263).

Attemptsmadein1975tounderscorethesubstanceoftheprojectfailedtogain tractioninthefaceofmountingdoubtsconcerningtheviabilityoftheproject. PremierDunstan,inanunpopularanddesperatemove,threatenedtoforciblyexile largesectionsofthestatepublicservicetoMonartobutlater,undersomepressure, backeddown(Wanna 1982,p.263).Theconcernwasthatwithoutsuchenmasse, forcedtherelocationofbureaucrats,Monartowas “loomingasanine-to- five satellite;aghosttownofdailycommuters” (Wanna 1982,p.263).

443DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.3TheDURD

Fig.3.3 Monartoconceptplan:ThebackboneofMonarto’splanningwasanopen-spacesystem basedonexistingcreeks,resultingingenerousgreencorridorsforbothwildlifemovementand humanrecreation. Source PlanbyShanklandCoxandBorisKazanskitracedbytheauthor

Compoundingthissituation,theestablishmentoftheMDCtoconstructthenew townin1974coincidedwiththeonslaughtofasevereeconomicdepression (Wanna 1982,p.265).TheDunstanGovernmentfounditselfinapositioninwhich itsavailablereserveswereofnecessityexpendedonjob-creationschemesrather thanonperceivedluxuryitemssuchasnewcities(Wanna 1982,p.265).This mirroredthefederalgovernment’sincreasingunwillingnesstocommitfunding,and thecontinuationoftheMonartoschemeincreasinglybecameanembarrassmentto theDunstanadministration(Wanna 1982,p.267).

TheTonkinLiberalstategovernment,whichcametoofficein1979,hadwound uptheschemeby1981and,sensinglittlepopulardisapproval, finallyremoved Monartofromthestate’saccounts.Speculatorsinthemeantimeventured sometimes-novelsuggestionsconcerningthepossibleusesforthe18,000hectares ofgovernment-ownedopenspace.Oneinnovativelocalcounciloradvocated turningthesiteintoavastopen-rangezootoattracttourists(Wanna 1982,p.267),a planthathascometofruition,theMonartositeintimebecominghometo500 exoticandnativemammals,birds,andreptiles13 (insteadofbureaucratsreptiles!).

13Inasomewhatsimilarturnofevents,aproposeddevelopmentsiteinanothergrowthcenter, Bathurst-Orange,wastobecomeanarboretum.

’sGhostCitiesofDecentralization45 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Inessence,theMonartonewcityprojectwas “inthewrongtimeandplace” (Freestone 2013,p.240).ItsrelianceonsiphoningpopulationfromAdelaide becameaweakpointasAdelaide’spopulationgrowthslowedrapidlyinthe mid-1970s.Furthermore,itsinceptioncoincidedwithdepressedeconomicconditionsandonasite,whichitwasconcededbyMDC’sgeneralmanager,hadbeen selectedwithout “anydetailedanalysis” (Wanna 1982,p.261).

3.4StateGovernment-NetworkedCitiesintheNorthwest

AtthesametimeastheMonarto fiascowasunraveling,theWesternAustralianstate governmentwasalsopursuingitsownplansforpopulationdecentralizationto alleviatepressureoffthestatecapitalcityofPerth.Localsandpoliticiansperceived thatPerth,wasexperiencing “monstrousgrowth” whichneededtobe “retarded” (Weir 1974,p.4)soastopreserveawayoflifeforwhichPerthwas(apparently!) enviedaroundtheworld(Graham 1972,p.15).AswithMonarto,theanswerwas populationdecentralization.AsHerbertGraham,theMinisterforDevelopmentand Decentralizationdeclaredinrathermechanicalterms, “thegovernment’sdecentralizationmachineryshouldbegivenaverymuchenlargedroleandthatdecentralizationeffortsshouldbelubricatedwithgovernment financeandguarantees, plusadviceandencouragement” (1972,p.4).

EffortstowardpopulationdecentralizationinWesternAustraliafocusedin particularonthestate’sPilbaraRegioninthestate’snorthwest,anareawith abundantmineralresources(Graham 1972,p.11).In1972,thestategovernmentset aboutexaminingtheprospectsfordevelopingthePilbararegionandwasconsideringthecreationofanetworkofnewtownsinthePilbararegion(Cities Commission 1973,p.43;Stickells 2015,p.241)withaprojectedtotalpopulation of250,000people(Brodie-Hall 1972,p.8).

TheseeffortsculminatedinThePilbaraStudyin1974 amajorplanningstudy conductedbyTechnic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart.Thereportauthors envisagedthecreationofan “entirelynewurbansystem” basedonthedevelopment ofadditionalresource-basedindustries(suchaspastoralism,forestry,andtourism), coupledwiththemajorimpetusofresourceextraction,therelatedmanufacturingof steelfromlocaliron-orereserves(Rushman 1976,p.14),andthepossible enrichmentofuranium(Brodie-Hall 1972,p.8).

ThefocusforthisproposednewurbansystemwasthePilbaracoastalregion betweentheBurrupPeninsulainthewestandPointSamsonintheeast,referredto astheNickolBaysub-region.Twocompany-miningtownsDampierandWickham, 75kmapart,defi nedtheregion,yetlackedanyconnectingcoordinatedpublic transportsystem.Theauthorsofthereportbelievedthatifthesub-regionwasto shedits “frontier,transient,companytown” imagethe “isolationofitspartsmustbe brokendownanditsindustriesandcommunitiesintegratedintoanurbancomplex, capableoffunctioningasanormalurbancommunityeventhoughitscomponent parts” werespreadoverawidearea(Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacock

463DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.3.4 TheNickolBaysub-region:Thesub-regionwastooperateasadistributed75-km-long polycentriccityconnectedbyahigh-speedbustransportsystem(1972). Source PlanbyTechnic 10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewarttracedbytheauthor

Stewart 1972,p.61)(Fig. 3.4).Astheyexplained,onlythenwouldtherelationship betweenemployerandemployeebenormalized,witheachabletoexercisefreedom ofchoiceinrelationtorecruitment,jobselectionandchosentheplaceofliving (Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.88).Theauthorsofthe reportfeltthatthiswouldenableresidentstoidentifywiththeirhomesandtheir towns,andtodevelopsocialrelationshipswhichtranscendedthoseassociatedwith work(Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.61).

Theauthorsstressedthat,fortheseparatetownsintheNickolBaysub-regionto operateinthisway,ahigh-speedbustransportsystemwasrequiredtoallow efficientinterconnections(Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972, p.63).Theplanningteamintendedthatthegroupofdistributedtowns(both existingandproposed)wouldbeabletocollectivelyfunctioninawaythatyielded allthebenefitsofacityintermsofculturalfacilities,educationalopportunities,and regionalidentity(Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.88).The desirabilityofaninternationalairportsituatedtothesouthoftheNickolBay sub-regionwasalsoidentifi ed,ensuringthatthePilbarawouldlieontheairroute fromPerthtoSingaporeandEurope(Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacock Stewart 1972,p.163).

Paradise Well Karratha (existing) Mount Burrup Dampier (existing) Dampier South Maitland River Mount Princep Withnell Bay Dixon Island Nickol River Roebourne (existing)
4km
Point Samson
3.4StateGovernment-NetworkedCitiesintheNorthwest47 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.4.1ParadiseWell

Thereportauthorsidentifiedanumberofnewpotentialtownsappendedtothis distributedcitystructure, “ParadiseWell” beingonenestledintothelowersection ofMountAnketell(Fig. 3.4).ParadiseWelltookitsnamefromalimitedaquifer thatappearedtoofferapermanentandpotablesupplyofwateraswellassoilsthat weresuitableforgardening(Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972, p.129).ThereportauthorsprojectedthattheParadiseWellsitehadthecapacityfor amaximumof60,000people,andby1990,thecitywouldcontain30,000people. Thispopulationwastobehousedinthreedistrictsanditwascalculatedthatthey wouldrequirenineprimaryandthreesecondaryschools,aregionaleducation college,threedistrictcommercialcenterspluslocalcommunitycommercialcenters (Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.129).Thereport ’sauthors alsoplannedthatParadiseWellwouldhouseatertiaryeducationalestablishment withacapacityforgrowthtoafullcampus.Itwassuggestedthattwoprominent Perthuniversitiesbeinvitedtoestablishspeci ficcoursesatsuchanestablishment, inparttoencouragethemovementofbothstaffandstudentsbetweenthePerthand theNickolBaycenters(Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972, p.155).

Intheliteratureoftheperiodmuchwasmadeofthepotentialofnewcitiesfrom theperspectiveofthemactingasexperimentallaboratoriesfortestingdesign innovation(Alonso 1970,p.15).TheintentionoftheplannedurbanismatParadise Well,andtheothercentersalongthenecklace,wasnothinglessthananurban revolution.Thiswasincontrasttomostofthethenexistingminingtownsinthe Pilbararegion,whichwerereplicasofsuburbanpatternsfromAustralia’scapital cities14 (Newton 1985,p.180).Inlinewithsuchsentiments,theauthorsofthe PilbaraStudyespousedtheneedforanurbanformthatwasabletoemphasizethe landscape’s “ruggedgrandeuranditsbeauty,cultivateaprideinitsresourcesand itsclimate. ” Furthermore,itwas “togenerateacivilitybyidentifyingthestressesof conventionalmetropolitanlifeandremoving[them]fromthenewlymodi fied environment” (Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.86).

ShayGap,aremotePilbaraminingsettlement,wasa1970progenitorofthe townsproposedinthePilbarastudyanddisplayedtheinnovationsthatwereto supportthesesocietalshifts.LawrenceHowroydwasthearchitectwhodesigned ShayGapandwhoalsoformedthecompanyTechnic10tocontributetothePilbara Study.

14ThisreflectedtheethosofthePeopletheNorthCommittee(PTNC)(Newton 1985).ThePTNC wantedto “smash” theimageofthenorthas “alandofextremesandhardships,” andconvincethe city-dweller,whohasaroutinenine-to-fivejob,ahouseinthesuburbs,and “cutsthegrassinfront ofhishouseandcleanshiscaronSunday,” thathiscomfortablelifestylecouldbereplicatedinthe north(McGregor 2016).

483DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.4StateGovernment-NetworkedCitiesintheNorthwest49

3.4.2ShayGap

Locatedsome300kmtotheeastoftheNickolBaysub-regionandinclose proximitytotheperimeteroftheGreatSandyDesert,ShayGapwassituatedinone ofthemostarid,andisolatedareasinAustralia(Newton 1985,p.180).Inresponse, thedesignconceptsformulatedforShayGapcontinuetorepresentperhapsthe “mostradicalandimaginativeattempttoplanatowntoaccommodatetheexigenciesofclimateandisolation” tomeetthelivingrequirementsofpeoplewho migratedfromAustralia’ssoutherncitiestothePilbararegion(Newton 1985, p.181).

ArchitectLawrenceHowroyddesignedShayGapasacompactinward-facing communitysituatedinanaturalamphitheaterofrockyoutcrops,whichwhen assistedbytheclosearrangementofhousing,hidthevastuninhabiteddesertsand providedearlysunsetsovertherockyoutcrops(Fig. 3.5).Thisconceptwasderived fromMiddleEastcommunitiesandwaspremisedonthebeliefthatthe “perceptual protectionofthecliffs(outcrops)hasapowerfulpositivepsychologicaleffectonthe residentpopulation” (Newton 1985,p.181).Moreover,throughthetownnestling intothisamphitheaterformedbytherockyoutcrops,whichistypicalofthePilbara landscape,itwasintendedthattheprojectwouldemphasizethelandscape’s “ruggedgrandeuranditsbeauty” (Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.86).

Thesettlementeschewedthefamiliarqualitiesofthesuburbanbuiltenvironment,experimentingwithunconventionallayoutsandhousingforms,leadingto residentsdescribingitasa “moonbase” (Stickells 2015,p.235).Inparttoadaptto theenvironmentandclimate,thetowncomprisedacompactclusteringof approximately10one-totwo-storyhousesandfacilities,termedaprecinct,each interconnectedbywalkways.ShayGap’sdesignconcentratedonbuiltformto minimizeunshadedglaringanddustygreenspaces,reducelandscapedareasto manageableproportionswithconcentratedvegetationandgeneratepoolsofshade togiveimmediaterelieftoadjacentspacesandtoreducesolarexposure(Newton 1985,p.184).

Howroyd,inabidto “removethestressesofmetropolitanlife” (Technic10& CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.86),excludedvehiclesfromthetown itselfbyencirclingthetownwitharingroadnexttowhichlock-upgarageswere sited.Asaresult,theinternalmovementwasbywalkwaysonly,15 withthedistancesfromtheperipheralcarparkingareastoresidencesandfromtheresidencesto townfacilitiesnotexceeding150meters(Newton 1985,p.181)(Fig. 3.6).In banishingcarstothecircumferenceofthetown,aconsciousattemptwasbeing madetorelievethestressofchildcare,enablingchildrentomoveatwillthroughthe townwithouttheirparentshavingtoworryaboutthembeinginjuredorkilledin roadaccidents(Newton 1985,p.182).

15Theoutdoorspaceimmediatelyadjacenttoeachhousewasnotfullyenclosed,allowingasubtle transitionfromthehousetothewalkways(Newton 1985,p.182).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.3.5 ShayGapviewedfromtheair.ShayGapwasaprogenitorforParadiseWellandthe NickolBaysub-regionmoregenerally. Source ImagebyAerialSurveysAustraliareprinted courtesyoftheStateLibraryofWesternAustralia(269013PD)(StateLibraryofWestern Australia)

Despitethesesignificantinnovations,ShayGap,withitspopulationofmorethan 850in1981(Newton 1985,p.180),closedin1994duetotheshuttingdownof miningoperationsthepreviousyear.Intheend, fluctuationsintheminingindustry unsurprisinglytriumphedoverinnovativedesign.

3.5TheResultsofDecentralizationFever

Atthefederallevel,thecontroversialdismissaloftheWhitlamGovernmentin1975 signaledtheofficialdemiseoftheDURD.Followingthis,theDURDcontinuedto be “pilloried” andnational-scaleurbanplanningpolicyhas “atrophied” intheyears since(Gleeson 2010,p.60).Indeedasthe1980scontinued,theimpactofglobalizationandthetrendtowardadoptingneoliberalprinciplesatthefederalandstate levelsofgovernmentpromptedpolicymakerstodoubtthe “appropriatenessand efficacy” ofgovernmentinterventionindecentralization,intheformofnewor boostedcitybuilding(Pennay 2005,p.331).Formanypoliticiansviewingthe DURDdecentralizationprograminretrospect,itwassomethingofanaberration. Theprojectwasseenasacarry-overfromanearlierandvastlydifferenttime,

503DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.5TheResultsofDecentralizationFever51

Fig.3.6 ShayGap’spedestrianprecinct:Howroydespousedtheneedforanurbanformthat generated “acivilitybyidentifyingthestressesofconventionalmetropolitanlifeandremoving [them]fromthenewlymodifiedenvironment” (Technic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart 1972,p.86) namelycars. Source PlanbyTechnic10&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewarttraced bytheauthor

initiatedbya “naive,over-spendingandover-ambitious” federalgovernment,based onanoutdatedunderstandingofthepowersofgovernment(Pennay 2005,p.338).

Inpart,asaresult,theprojectionsthattheneworboostedcitieswould,bythe turnofthecentury,reachpopulationsofbetween250,000and500,000(Neutze 1974,p.272)provedtobedramaticallyoverinflated.Forexample,Albury–Wodonga(oneofthemoresuccessfulexamples)hasacurrentpopulationofjust over100,000people,lessthanhalfoftheprojection.

Similarly,theplanningstudyfortheNickolBaysub-region flounderedwiththe onsetofdepressedeconomicconditions asituationcompoundedbythefailureto establishahubforthemanufacturingofsteel.Assuch,thenetworkofproposed newtownsfailedtoemergeandthePilbararegioncontinuedtocompriseaseriesof disparatecompanytownsbasedonaconventional,low-density,suburbanmodel.

Inthedecadesthatfollowedthesevariousproposals,population flowsfromthe inlandagriculturalregionstotheburgeoningcoastalcitiescreatedwhatdemographerBernardSalt,in2001,termedthe “empty-islandsyndrome.” Characteristicof thissyndromewasanincreasingdifferentialbetweencoastal,urbanpopulationsand inland,ruralpopulations(Kullmann 2013,p.243).Indeed,mostAustralianstates showedanunbrokenrecordofincreasingconcentrationinthedecadesthatfollowed the1970–1975period.

5m Path
Screen
Dwelling Car park Housing precinct
julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

523DecentralizationFever

3.6KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNeworBoostedCities (1970–1975)

ThisperiodoffersawealthoflessonsforthosewhoproposenewcitiesinAustralia. Theselessonsincludetobewaryofthepsychologicalhurdlestoruralandremote living,tonotunderestimatethecontinuing “gravity” ofthecapitalcitiesbothin termsofretainingpopulationbutalsojobs,and finallytobecognizantofthe politicalimpedimentstodecentralizationprograms.

3.6.1PsychologicalHurdles

HamperingmanyofthenewcitiesproposedaspartoftheDURDprogramof decentralizationwasthepoorimageofcountryareas.InAustralia,ruraltownsoften sufferfromanimageproblem.Urbandwellerstendedtoviewsuchtownsas “dull, lackinginamenities,possessingpoorereducationalopportunities,andproviding morelimitedsocialcontacts” (Lonsdale 1972,p.327).Asonecitywriterputit, “there’snothingtodointhecountrytownoncethepubsshut.” Suchattitudeswere undoubtedlybiased,buttheypointtoanimportantpsychologicaldimensiontothe problemofdecentralization(Lonsdale 1972,p.327).

Addingtothepsychologicalbarriertodecentralizationwastheinlandlocationof theproposedcities,whichconflictedwiththepreferenceofAustraliansforclimaticallyfavorablelocationsonthecoast.Despiteitbeingregardedgenerallyasa successbythe1960s,Canberrawasstillwidelythoughtofassufferingfromhigh winds,particularlyinwinter, flyplaguesinsummerandextremesofheatandcold greaterthanthoseexperiencedincoastalcities(Rushman 1976,p.13).Tryingto inducelargenumbersofpeopletomoveinlandtoneworboostedcitieswas evidentlyamajorchallenge(Rushman 1976,p.13).16 ThiswouldhavebeenparticularlythecaseinthePilbara,whichwasconsideredbymanyas “theperipheryof theperipheryofaperipheralAustralia, ” the “tyrannyofdistancecubed” (Sheppard 2013,p.269).Indeed,thePilbarawasremoteenoughfortheneighboring MontebelloislandstobethesiteofnuclearweaponstestsbytheBritishinthe 1950s.

Compoundingthepsychologicalbarriertomovingtorural,andinparticular remote,locations,wasthe “newtownblues.” NewresidentsinBritishnewtowns frequentlycomplainedthat “there’snowheretogoandnothingtodo”—asituation thatwascompoundedby “syntheticcommunitieswithlittlesocialtexture” (Berkley 1973,p.484).Whilethe “newtownblues” wasparticularlyaphenomenonof Britishnewtowns,someofthenewcomerstoAlbury–Wodongawhoarrivedinthe earlyyearsrecalledenduringthedifficultiesofbeing “pioneersinthe

16Especiallyastheywouldnotbe “captive” inthewaythatpublicservantsmovingtoCanberra were.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.6KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNeworBoostedCities(1970

under-servicednewestates” (Pennay 2005,p.339).Evenpeoplerelocatingto Canberrafromthestatecapitalstendedtoviewitwith “enormousdistasteand dislike” asituationwhichpersisted “foraboutayearortwountiltheybecome socializedintothenewsociety” (Aitken 1970,p.55).Thechallengeforthepromotersofnewcitieswasbuildingthepopulationupquicklytothresholdsofatleast 200,000peoplewheretherequiredeconomic,cultural,andsocialdiversitycould effectively “holdpeople.”

3.6.2TheContinuedLivabilityoftheStateCapitalCities

Aswiththepreviouseraof1901–1945,the “push-factor” ofpopulationawayfrom thecapitalcitieswasagainsigni ficantlyoverestimated.Putsimply,Australians generallylikedlivinginbigcities,andtheyintendedtocontinuetoliveinthem (Aitken 1970,p.56).AsDonAitkenexplained:

Idonotthinkitisanyuseatalltalkinginvaguephraseslikethequalityoflifeorman’s idealroleorenvironmentbecauseitjustwashesstraightoffpeople’sbacks.Thepeoplein SydneylikebeinginSydney,cannotreallyimaginethatitisgoingtobemorepleasant livinganywhereelse,havenointentionofmoving… (Aitken 1970,p.59).

Theresultinglackofcentrifugalforcespushingoutfromthecapitalcities undoubtedlytookthe “windoutofthesails” ofdecentralizationprograms. Commentatorsproposedthatonlyasignificantpushfactor suchastheremaking ofthecapitalcitiessoastobe “reallyunpleasanttolivein”—wouldhavemadethe DURD’sneworboostedcitiesattractiveandindeedviable(AitkeninFreestone etal. 2016,p.6).

ThisiswheretheU.S.experienceofsubstantialdecentralization,whichwas happeningatthesametime,differedfromtheAustralianexperience.IntheU.S., decentralizationwaspromotedbytheseriousdeteriorationofbig-cityenvironments incombinationwithaperceivedracialproblem,asituationthatpromptedurban residentsandmanufacturerstoconsidermoving,andassuchdecentralize,jobs (Lonsdale 1971,p.124).Arguablyinthe1967–1977periodinAustralia,thelargest citieshadnotyetreachedsuchacrisispoint(Kilmartin 1973,p.38)andwere thereforenotundesirableenoughtofuelamassivedecentralizationprogram (Lonsdale 1971,p.124).Allthemore,theywerenotbigcities(bytoday’sstandards)Sydneyhavingapopulationofonly2,800,000andMelbourne2,500,000 (CitiesCommission 1973,p.12).

EveniftherewasacrisisinAustralia’scapitalcitiesatthetime,acompelling argumentremained namelythatthoseurbanproblemsbedealtwithinthecapital citiesthroughanattempttounderstandanddealwiththerootcauses(Payneand Mills 1973,p.3).AsAlonsowarned:

evenifnewtownsturnedouttobewonderfulplaces,theywouldstillbealmostpowerlesstoaffectourpresenturbanproblems;andIfearthat,assirensofutopia,theymight distractusfromourproperwork(1970,p.17).

–1975)53 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fromapoliticalpointofview,newcitieswerealsoadifficultsellforpoliticians reliantonthesupportofelectoratesinthecapitalcities.Forpeopletomovetonew cities,incentivesneedtobeprovidedwhile,atthesametime,disincentivesneedto beappliedtotheexistingcities.Becausethevastmajorityoftheelectoratelivesin thecities,thisraisedthequestion:Whatpoliticianisgoingtobepreparedto participateinanyformofanti-citypropaganda?(Llewellyn-Smith 1970,p.87);the answerwasabraveorpotentiallynaiveone… TheAustralianpoliticalstructure wassimplynotgearedtodeliveringsuchchanges(Llewellyn-Smith 1970,p.87).It wasnotpolitically(oreconomically)feasibletocontemplatethepossible “rundown ofexistingcities” regardlessoftheattractivenessofthenewcitypolicy(Payneand Mills 1973,p.5).

3.6.3CompetitionfromOtherTownsandCities

Attemptstobuildneworboostedcitiesalsosufferedfromcompetitionfromthe manytownsnotselectedforprioritizedgrowth(Rushman 1976,p.7).Sinceanew orboostedcitiespolicyinvolvedselectingarelativelylimitednumberofsites,it inevitablyranintoamajorpoliticalproblem:althoughvotersintheregionthatis selectedwillsupportthepolicy,thereareinevitablymoreregionsthatarenot selected(Neutze 1974,p.271).

IntheMonartoexample,countrytownswithhighunemploymentweredismayed attheideaofthestategovernmentcarvinganothercityfrombushland.Theywere perhapsrightlyupsetthattheirowntownswerenotchosentobeboostedbut,more understandably,wereafraidoflosingpopulationtoMonarto(Wanna 1982,p.266). Assuch,whenviewedfromtheperspectiveofotherstrugglingtowns,suchnew cityproposals “appearedtobeamisappropriationofstatefundsonagrandscale” (Wanna 1982,p.266).

HerbertGraham,theMinisterforDevelopmentandDecentralizationinWestern Australia,wasawareofthisissue.Asheexplained, “you,ofcourse,canimagineif Bunbury17 ischosen,theshrieksofhorrorthatwillemanatefromAlbany,orvice versa” (1972,p.16).Whilehehoped,thatampleresearchcouldleadtothe “correct choice,” thecompetitionbetweenneworboostedcities,andexistingtowns remainedathornypoliticalissue.

Inallthecapitalcitiestherewasalsoacommitmenttocontinuepopulation growthonsubstantialreservesoffringingmetropolitanlandalreadyearmarkedor subdividedforsuburbandevelopment.Neworboostedcities,whetherintheform ofsatelliteorregionalcities,hadtocompetewiththiscontinuingsuburbangrowth inthemajorcities(Rushman 1976,p.22).Moreover,despitetheperceivedcrisisin Australiancities,therewasnotadesperatehousingshortage(Rushman 1976, p.22).ThismadetheAustraliansituationmuchlessfavorabletonewcitiesthan

17BunburyandAlbanywereatthispointregionalWesternAustraliantowns.

543DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

3.6KeyBarrierstoDevelopingNeworBoostedCities(1970

thatinEnglandinthelate1940s.AsRushmanexplainsconcerningsuchashortage: “Peoplewillbemoremotivatedtomovetoanewcitysimplyinordertogetaroof overtheirheads” (1976,p.22).

3.6.4CentralizingEconomicForces

Arguably,thedecentralizationprogrampursuedbytheDURDalsostruggled againstcentralizingeconomicforces.AsLonsdalereasonedatthetime:

Decentralizationmaynotbearealisticobjectiveintoday’seconomicworld.Aslongasany societyplacesanoverridingpremiumoneconomicproductivity,efficiency,andgrowth,the economicforcespromotingcentralizationarelikelytoremaindominantandperhaps uncontrollablebygovernmentaction(1972,p.328).

Inshort,theeconomicforcesworkingagainstdecentralizationwere “toopowerfulandtoofundamental” tobeovercomebythekindofeffortsthatgovernments hadbeenwillingtomake(Lonsdale 1972,p.328)andassuchthenewcities struggledagainstthecountervailingcoursesofmarket-drivendevelopment (Gleeson 2010,p.61;Lonsdale 1972,p.328).

Forone,thenewandboostedcityproposalsofthe1970–1975periodhadto overcomethegeographicinertiaofpreviousinvestmentssuchasmanufacturing plantsandfacilities,whichwereconcentratedinornearthecapitalcities.Formany firms,amoveanywherewouldbeprohibitivelyexpensiveandhighlyinconvenient forcompanystaff(Lonsdale 1972,p.326).Aninsufficientsupplyoflabor,particularlyprofessionalandtechnical,inruralandremoteareasmeantthatemployers whomighthaveconsideredmovingtoaregionallocationwouldhavefaceddifficultiesinassemblingtherequiredlabor(Lonsdale 1972,p.326),letalonegeneratingthebenefitsofagglomerationandtheclusteringofrelated fieldsofbusiness, whichleadstoincreasedproductivity(DurantonandPuga 2013,p.806).

InthecaseofMonarto,offi cialsinterviewedownersofmanufacturing fi rmsin Adelaidewhowereaskedtoratetheimportanceofvariousfactorsaffectinglocation decisionsbytheircompanies.Thefactorratedasthemostimportantwasthe availabilityofsuitablelabor.Inresponsetotheseinterviews,thefederalCities Commissionconcludedmanufacturingactivitieswouldbemucheasiertoattractto Monartoonceitspopulationreached,approximately60,000(CitiesCommission 1973,p.123) adifficult figuretoachieveinthe firstplacewithlittleorno manufacturingjobs.

Aworseningeconomicclimatecompoundedthissituation.TheDURDprogram wasinitiatedatatimeofeconomicboom,withlargeamountsofmoneybecoming availablefromtheAustralianGovernment,whichwasstill “flushedwithitssuccess ingainingofficeandwaseagertopressonwithitsprogram” (Rushman 1976, p.22).By1975,theeconomicpicturehadchangeddramatically.Thedevelopment boomhadfadedtoawhimper,theindustrywasfalteringandunemploymenthad reached300,000outofapopulationof13,000,000people(Rushman 1976,p.22).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au
–1975)55

TheWhitlamGovernment,whichhadinitiatednegotiationswithtwoJapanese carmanufacturerswithaviewtotheiropeningplantsatAlbury–Wodonga,was suddenlyinvolvedinsteadinthepartialclosureofoneofAustralia’sbigfourcar manufacturersandconfrontedwithnewsthatoneoftheotherswasinserious difficulty(Rushman 1976,p.22).ThenewcitiesofMonartoorAlbury–Wodonga simplydidnothavethenecessarybackingofalargecompanylikeGeneralMotors, suchasElizabeth,had(Wanna 1982,p.265).

Revisedpopulationprojections,whichindicatedthatAustralia’spopulationwas movingtowardthepointofzerogrowthandthatthecountry’spopulationwasnot likelytorisetomorethan17,900,000bytheendofthecentury(asopposedtothe projected28,000,000),compoundeddireeconomicconditions.18

3.6.5UncoordinatedFederal-andState-LevelPlanning

Alackofcoordinationbetweenfederalandstategovernmentalsohamperedthe DURD’snewandboostedcityprogram.Whileadictatorialmodelofgovernance wouldhavebeenmoreeffectiveindeliveringtherestructuringnecessarytoachieve theDURD’snewcities,inAustraliaitneededtobedeliveredthroughthedemocraticprocess(Llewellyn-Smith 1970,p.87).Thisinvolvedextendednegotiations withstategovernmentsthatdidnotnecessarilysharethefederalgovernment’s prioritiesinrelationtocitiesandinsomecaseswerejustpayinglipservicetothe DURDprogram(Robert 1976,p.70) asituationwhichwasdifficultforthe DURDtorectifyfromthe “incestuousisolationofCanberra” (Day 1977,p.40).

Theresultinglackofcoordinationbetweenfederalandstategovernmentmeant therewasnota “properadjustment” withinexistingstateplanningtosupportthe federalgrowthcenterplans,particularlyinregardstorestrictingthegrowthofthe capitalcities(Robert 1976,p.68).Theproblemthisposedwas,withoutsuch restrictions,aneworboostedcity,would flounderduetothecompetitionfor industryandpopulationposedbythecapitalcities.

3.7Conclusion

Thischapterscopedthedecadebetween1970and1975,whenthereseemedtobea realpossibilitythatthenationwould “embarkonalargescaleprocessofnewcity building” (Freestoneetal. 2016,p.2).Thisperiodisinstructiveforthosepursuinga visionofnewcities,becauseitcautionsagainstunderestimatingthepsychological, economic,andpoliticalforcesthatworkagainstthepopulatingofnewcities,and underratesthelivabilityoftheexistingcoastalcapitalcities.

18Ultimately,Australia’s2000populationwas19,150,000.

563DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

References

AitkenD(1970)ThepoliticallikelihoodofnewtownsinAustralia.PaperpresentedattheToward citiesofthetwenty-firstcentury:CanberraForum1970Proceedings,Canberra AlonsoW(1970)Themirageofnewtowns.PublicInterest19:3–17 AmericanAssociationfortheAdvancementofScience(1972)Oldcities,newcities,nocities. AmericanAssociationfortheAdvancementofScience,WashingtonD.C. BerkleyGE(1973)Britain’snewtownblues.NatlCivicRev62(9):479–485 BoydR(2010)TheAustralianugliness.TextPublishing,Melbourne Brodie-HallL(1972)Mining.PaperpresentedattheASeminaronDecentralisation,Geraldton CheungR(1972)Balanceddevelopment:acaseforcommunityconcern.Paperpresentedatthe BalancedDevelopment:ACaseForCommunityConcernConference,Melbourne CitiesCommission(1973)ReporttotheAustraliangovernment:arecommendednewcities programmefortheperiod1973–1978.AustralianGovernmentPublications,Canberra CocksD(1992)Usewithcare.NewSouthWalesUniversityPress,Kensington,Sydney DayP(1977)TheRegionalMirage:andproblemsthatwon’tgoaway.RAustPlanInstJ15 (2):38–42

DurantonG,PugaD(2013)Thegrowthofcities

EllemC(2014)Nolittleplans:Canberra,viaChicago,WashingtonDC,ThePhilippines,and onwards.ThesisEleven123(1):106–122

FreestoneR(1982)ThegardencityideainAustralia.GeogrRes20(1):24–48 FreestoneR(2013)Backtothefuture.In:BolleterJ,WellerR(eds)MadeinAustralia:thefuture ofAustraliancities.UniversityofWesternAustraliaPress,Perth,pp236–243 FreestoneR,NicholsD,WalkerP(2016)Towardsthecitiesofthe21stcentury.Paperpresentedat theAustralianHousingAssociation,Ballarat GazzardD,PottsJDS(1966)Australianoutrage:thedecayofavisualenvironment.UreSmith, Sydney

GleesonB(2010)Thegreatestspoiler:salvationinthecities.In:SchultzJ(ed)GriffithReview29: ProsperorPerish.GriffithUniversity,Brisbane,pp57–66

GoldsmithJ,ConnerJ(1970)ResolutionsofCanberraForum1970.PaperpresentedattheToward citiesofthetwenty-firstcentury:CanberraForum1970Proceedings,Canberra GrahamH(1972)Decentralisationapolicyforaction.PaperpresentedattheASeminaron Decentralisation,Geraldton InstituteofSurveyors(1972)Decentralization,NoworNever,Traverse KilmartinLA(1973)UrbanpolicyinAustralia.Thecaseofdecentralisation.AustNZJSociol9 (2):36–39

KullmannK(2013)DesignfordeclinelandscapearchitecturestrategiesfortheWesternAustralian wheatbelt.LandscapeJ32(2):243–260

Llewellyn-SmithM(1970)Canberraforum1970 towardsthecitiesofthe21stcentury.RAust PlanInstJ8(3):86–87

LonsdaleR(1971)Decentralization:theAmericanexperienceanditsrelevanceforAustralia. AustJSocIssues6(2):116

LonsdaleR(1972)Manufacturingdecentralization:thediscouragingrecordinAustralia.Land Econ48(4):321–328

McHargI(1992)Designwithnature.Wiley,NewYork McGregorR(2016)Thedivisivenorth.In:Environment,race,andnationhoodinAustralia. Springer,pp183–201

NeutzeG(1974)ThecasefornewcitiesinAustralia.UrbanStud11(3):259–275

NewtonPW(1985)Planningnewtownsforharsharidenvironments:anevaluationofShayGap andNewmanminingtowns,Australia.Ekistics52:180–188

OakleyS(2004)Politicsofrecollection:examiningtheriseandfallofDURDandbettercities throughnarrative.UrbanPolicyRes22(3):299–314

PayneM,MillsG(1973)ThecasefornewcitiesinAustralia.RAustPlanInstJ11(1):3–6

References 57 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

PennayB(2005)Makingacityinthecountry:theAlbury-WodongaNationalGrowthCentre Project1973–2003.UNSWPress,Kensington ReadeCC(1912)TownplanninginAustralasia: “Illustrated”.TownPlanRev3(1):4 RobertB(1976)Growthcentresnow?PaperpresentedattheNationalSymposium,Canberra RushmanG(1976)TowardsnewcitiesinAustralia.TownPlanRev47(1):4 SheppardE(2013)ThinkingthroughthePilbara.AustGeogr44(3):265–282 SpilhausA(1967)Theexperimentalcity.Science159:710–715 StateLibraryofWesternAustralia.AerialphotographsofShayGap,16Aug1973.Retrieved10 Jan2018,from http://encore.slwa.wa.gov.au/iii/encore/record/C__Rb2456214__ S269013PD__Orightresult__X3;jsessionid=6003083C53043A287A64B0586FDAA580?lang= eng&suite=def StickellsL(2015)Designingwayout:ShayGapandthe ‘livinglaboratory’ ofthe1970s.In: GoldswainP,SullyN,TaylorW(eds)Outofplace:occasionalessaysonAustralianregional communitiesandbuiltenvironmentsintransition.UniversityofWesternAustraliaPublishing, Perth,pp231–265 Technic10,&CrooksMichaelPeacockStewart(1972)Pilbaratownplanningstudy.Government ofWesternAustralia,Perth WalkerP,GrantJ,NicholsD(2015)Monarto’scontestedlandscape.LandscapeRev16(1) WannaJ(1982)Urbanplanningundersocialdemocracy thecaseofMonarto,SouthAustralia. AustQ54(3):260–270 WeirF(1974)Decentralisation:aworkablesolution.Unpublished WiddowsR(1974)Countryv.city:astudyofattitudestocountryandcitylivinginasmall countrytown.AustJSocIssues9(3):196–208

583DecentralizationFever julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Chapter4 NewNorthernCities

Abstract Therehavebeennumerousrecentproposalsforneworboostedcitiesin northernAustralia.TheseincludenewchartercitiesinthenorthproposedbyWorld BankVicePresidentPaulRomer.OtherproposalsincludeWesternAustralianstate governmentplanstoturnPilbaraminingcompanytownsintobustlingcities,and NorthernTerritoryGovernmentplanstobuildasatellitecityorbitingDarwin.This chapterprovidesatouroftheseneworboostedcityproposalsanddiscussestheir agendasandspatialplanning.Theseproposalsarepotentiallyimportantbecausethe federalgovernmenthasprojectedapossiblefourfoldincreaseinthenorth’spopulationby2060.

Keywords NorthernAustralia Newcities Boostedcities Chartercities Miningcities PaulRomer Broome Karratha Darwin Satellitecities

4.1ANorthernInitiation

ThisbookdefinesnorthernAustraliaastheregionnorthoftheTropicofCapricorn (23.5’ Slatitude).Thisencompassesanareaofapproximately3,500,000km2,or 45%ofAustralia’stotallandmass,yethousesonly5%ofitspopulation.Despiteits generallysparsehabitation,northernAustraliadoes,however,containanumberof majortownsandsmallcities.InWesternAustralia,theseincludethetouristtownof Broome(population15,000)andtheminingtownsofPortHedlandandKarratha (population15,000and17,000,respectively).IntheNorthernTerritory,these includetheadministrativecityofDarwin(106,000),andinQueensland,thelifestylecitiesofMackay,Cairns,andTownsville(population115,000,140,000,and 170,000,respectively),amongothers(Fig. 4.1).

Proponentsofnortherndevelopmentenvisageoften-extremepopulationgrowth inthenorth,inpart,becauseofitsgrowinggeopoliticalimportance.Commentators onnortherndevelopmentconsiderthatnorthernAustraliasitsattheintersectionof the “twomostimportantglobalaxesofthe21stcentury:Asiaandthetropics” (Rouxetal. 2014) tworegionsthatareprojectedtogrowsignifi cantlyintermsof

© TheAuthor(s)2018

J.Bolleter, TheGhostCitiesofAustralia,SpringerBriefsinGeography, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-319-89896-4_4

59 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.1 Northerncitiesandtownsbypopulation:Thismapshowsthesignificantexistingcities andtownsinnorthernAustraliawithrespecttotheirpopulation.ThenortherncitiesofDarwin, Cairns,Townsville,andMackayaresmallbythestandardsofAustraliancapitalcitiesinthesouth. Source Mapbytheauthor

populationandeconomicmight.Nonetheless,northernAustraliacontinuestobe considereda “frontier ” commensurate,tosomedegree,withthehistoricfrontiers suchastheAmericanWest;theCanadianWestandNorth;theSiberianFarEast andSouth-center;theBrazilianNortheast,Southeast,andInterior;China’sSinkiang andManchuria;andtheSouthernAfricanveldt(Cohen 2000).Becausehistorical attemptsatintensivedevelopmenthavebeensporadic,northernAustraliaoffersthe largestintact “savannaremainingonEarth,anextraordinarilyvast,naturallandscapewitharichbiodiversityofinternationalsignifi cance” (Nixetal. 2013). IndigenousculturallifeinnorthernAustraliaalsoremainsstrong,boundtothe landscapes,rivers,andwildlifethatthesetraditionalownershavemanagedfortens ofthousandsofyears.Nonetheless,indigenouspeopleinthenorthcontinueto experience “chronicdisadvantage” (Raupachetal. 2012).

Despitetheprofoundecologicalandculturalrichnessofthenorth,therecent federalgovernmentwhitepaper “OurNorth,OurFuture” (AustralianGovernment 2015)seesthepotentialofnorthernAustralialargelythroughaneconomiclens depictingthenorthasaplaceofendlesseconomicbountyandlimitlessopportunity. Asthereportboldlydeclares:

Developmentwillrequiremanymorepeoplelivinginthenorth.Transformationwon’t happenifitspopulationinchesupbyafewhundredthousandoverthenext20years.It

604NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.1ANorthernInitiation61

wouldremainahighcost,smallscaleeconomy;moreofapilotprojectthanapowerhouse. Weneedtolaythefoundationsforrapidpopulationgrowthandputthenorthonatrajectory toreachapopulationoffourto fivemillionby2060(AustralianGovernment 2015).

GivennorthernAustralia’scurrentpopulationisapproximately1,300,000,this representsanalmostfourfoldincreaseinpopulation(anadditional3,700,000 people).Thesubsequenturbanexpansiontohousethisadditionalpopulationis equivalentto22newTownsvilles,36newDarwins,or253newBroomes all (hypothetically)withinthenext40orsoyears!Inthisrespect,thewhitepaper ambiguouslyrefersto “thedevelopmentofmajorpopulationcentersofmorethana millionpeople” (AustralianGovernment 2015).Suchcitieswouldrepresenta sixfoldincreaseinpopulationofthecurrentlargestcity,Townsville,whichhasa populationofjust170,000people.Suchextremegrowthinthenorth’sexisting citiesisunlikelytooccurforthesimplereasonthatthecitysitesareallheavily constrainedandsubsequentlyhavelimiteddevelopableareas.1 Forthisreason,if thefederalgovernment’sprojectedgrowthinpopulationoccurs,newcitybuilding willberequired.Thenewandboostedcityproposalstabledinthischapter,whilein manycasespredatingthewhitepaper,helpustoimaginewhatcityformsafuture populationofnorthernAustraliaof5,000,000couldresidein.

4.2NeworBoostedCitiesintheNorth

IncontrasttotheDepartmentofUrbanandRegionalDevelopment’s(DURD) nationalagenda,intheearlytwenty-firstcenturyinAustralia,anythingresembling nationalurbanpolicyhasatrophied(Gleeson 2010).AsregionalplannerPaul Collitsexplains,federalgovernmentsnowgenerallyfacilitateratherthandirect regionaldevelopmentandhavestoppedpayinganythingbutthemerest “lipservice tothedecentralizationagendathatdrovetheWhitlamfederalgovernmentinthe 1970s” (Pennay 2005).

Inthevacuumcreatedbythewithdrawalofthefederalgovernment,therehave beennumerousunsolicited,speculativeproposalsforneworboostedcitiesin northernAustralia,particularlyinthenorthwest.2,3 Theseproposalshavebeenmade bystateandterritorygovernments,designprofessionals,demographers,economists,andlegalacademics,amongothers.

1Forinstance,Darwinisconstrainedbyriverine floodingandecologyandCairnsandTownsville bymountainranges, floodplains,rain-forestedhillslopes,andimportanthabitats.

2Therehavealsobeensomeunsolicitedproposalsfornewandboostedcitiesinthesouthernareas ofAustraliainthisperiod.Theseincludea2013proposalbyRichardWellerandtheauthorfor chainsofnewcitiesformingmegaregionsbetweenBrisbaneandMelbourneontheeastcoast,and GeraldtonandBusseltononthewestcoast(2013).

3TheproposalshavebeenparticularlylocatedinnorthwesternAustraliawheresettlementissignificantlysparserthanonthenortheastcoastandwheresignificantminingdevelopmentis occurring.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Thischapterinitiallysetsouttheserecentnewcityproposals;beginningwitha long-anticipatednewnortherncapitalcity,droppedintotheeastKimberley.The followingsectionexaminesproposalsfornewchartercities(new “Singapores”)and boostedcitiesemergingoutofexistingtownssuchasBroomeandKarratha.These boostedcityproposalshavebeenincludedinabookostensiblyabout “new” cities becausetheproposedpopulationincreasesareextreme.

4.3CapitalCities

DiscussionofanewnorthernAustralianseatofgovernmenthascontinuedforwell overacentury.Inthemidtolatenineteenthcentury,therewasmuchdiscussionofa newcapitalcityincloseproximitytothepastoralhinterlandoftheVictoriaRiver neartheWesternAustralianandNorthernTerritoryborder,aswellasanentrepôt portcapitalcityinnorthernAustralia(Reece 1989).TheapproachoftheSecond WorldWarsparkedconcernsaboutsecuringthenorthofthenationandperceptions thatthegovernmentwasnotdoingenoughtodeveloptheregion.Former QueenslandpremierTedTheodore,amongothers,calledforthecreationofa separatenorthernstatetorectifythissituation(InDaleetal. 2014).

Evenwhenthewarpassed,therewasacontinuingperceptionthatgoodgovernmentandcompetentadministrationintheremoteareasofnorthernAustralia requiredthatnorthernAustraliansruntheirownaffairsbytheirownparliaments (Wilkes 1954).Perthresident,FWeir,proposedin1974thatthewholeofWestern AustralianorthoftheTropicofCapricornbeexcisedintoanewstate,withacapital cityplannedonthecoastinthevicinityofPortHedlandorBroome(Weir 1974).In 2010,economistBrianHaratsisidenti fiedtheneedforanewnortherncapital—“an IndigenouscapitalbringingAustraliatotheworld” (Haratsis 2010),and finally, commentatorssuchasBernardSalthavecalledforthecreationofthree self-governingnewstatesinnorthernAustralia(Salt 2011).

In2012,theAustralianInstituteofArchitectsconvenedthe “Capithetical” internationalcompetitiontodesignafuturecapitalcity,anumberofwhichwere locatedinnorthernAustralia.Whilemanycompetitionentriessubmittedwere consciouslypolemicalandnotintendedtobeimplementedthedesignersofthe winningschemeoftheCapitheticalcompetition4 anAustralianNorthernEcoCity (ANEC) certainlyareseekingthecity’sconstruction.Moreover,theANEC proposalhasbeenpromotedatforumssuchasthe2014 “Developingnorthern Australia” conferenceandhasbeendescribedbythe(nowex)WesternAustralian ministerforregionaldevelopment,BrendonGrylls,assomethinghewantedtosee builtinhislifetime.

4RichardWeller,andtheauthor,receivedacommendationawardforthesamecompetition.

624NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.3.1AustralianNorthernEcoCity

DesignedbylandscapearchitecturalandurbandesignpracticeEcoscape,5 and promotedbyEcoscapeDirectorDavidKaesehagen,theANECproposalisfora new,yetlonganticipated,northerncapitalcity.6 Theprimarydriverofthiscityis theestablishmentofnewgovernmentdepartmentstodealwithAsianandnorthern development, “creatinganinvitingportaltoournorthernneighbours” inthecontext oftheAsianCentury(Desmond 2013).EcoscapeintendsthatANECwouldsupplementCanberra,whichwouldretainParliamentandpresumablyabsorbthe AustralianGovernment’sOfficeofNorthernAustralia,whichwasrecentlyestablishedinDarwin(NorthernTerritoryGovernment 2016).7

EcoscapeproposesthatANECwillbesited(likeCanberra)ontheedgeofa manufacturedlake,namely,thevastLakeArgyleintheKimberleyregion,created throughthedammingofOrdRiverinthe1960s.AsKaesehagenimplores: “Australianslovelivingnexttowater weareacoastal-dwellingsociety hereis anoptionforlivingnexttoalargewaterbody … ithasover70islands,andit’s quiteastunninglandscape.It’sgothugeappeal” (2014).

Thecityitselfisplannedtohaveapopulationof200,000by2050(Kaesehagen 2014),increasingAustralia’snorthernpopulationbyupto40%.Ecoscape,ina dramaticshiftfromAustralia ’sexistinglow-densitycities,planstohousethis populationatahighdensityof2200peoplepersquarekilometer(Kaesehagenin Kaesehagen 2014),almostseventimesthedensityofthestatecapitalcityofPerth (Fig. 4.2).

Thecity’sdesignersproposetositeANEC’skeyadministrativebuildingsonthe shoreofLakeArgyle.Whenviewedfromtheairthesebuildingsaretoforma singlemotifthatrepresentsthepathsbetweenthewaterholesoftheindigenous peopleoftheWesternDesert(incentralWesternAustralia).Thisnetworkisfurther expressedonthelandscapedroofsofadministrativebuildingsandsymbolizes “goodgovernanceforallcultures,” aswellasprovidingevidenceofthescheme’s sensitivitytotheintegrationofindigenousculture(Architecture&Design 2013). Thissymbolicsuperstructureiscomplementedbyanewcenterfor “Aboriginal cultureandlearning” (Kaesehagen 2014).

Ecoscapeprojectsadiverserangeofeconomicdriversforthecity.Apartfrom accommodatingthebureaucracythatwouldgowithbeinganortherncapital, ANECistobeahubfortourism(increasingtourismintheregionby1000%), particularlyfromChina.Ecoscapeenvisagesthatthiswillbefacilitatedthrough buildinganinternationalairportoutintoLakeArgyleitself(Kaesehagen 2014).

5Ecoscapeisanenvironmentalconsultancy,landscapearchitecture,andspatialplanningpractice basedinPerth,WesternAustralia.

6WhiletheexactgovernanceroleofANECisnotstated,itcouldformthecapitalofanew northernstatecomprisingthenorthofWesternAustralia,theNorthernTerritory,andQueensland.

7Itisworthnoting,however,thatthereisverylittlesubstantivegovernmentpresenceassociated withthefederalgovernmentthroughtheOfficeofNorthernAustralia.

4.3CapitalCities63 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.2 Australia’sNorthernEcoCity:ThedenseurbanismofAustralia’sNorthernEcoCity withLakeArgyleinthetopoftheimage. Source ImagebyEcoscape

ANEC’sdesignersforeseethatthecity’snewarchitecturalandurbanforms,in combinationwith “beautifulwilderness” areas,willalsodrawininternational tourists.Throughbothtourismandwelcomingimmigrants,itsproponentsbelieve ANECwillstrengthenrelationshipswithAustralia’snorthernneighbors(Ecoscape 2017).Ecoscapealsoproposesthatthecitywillprovideeducationandresearch concerningsustainableagriculture,whichcouldcontributetothedevelopmentofan Australian “foodbasket,” whichcouldhelpto “feedAsia” (2017).

Ecoscapeintendsthatthecitywillfunctionasasustainablecitylaboratorythat could,intime, “exportsustainablelivingtechnology” (Ecoscape 2017).Through thecity’sfunctionasahotbedforinnovation,itisintendedthatitwillaidthenation infacingchallengesrelatingtoclimatechange,watersecurity,foodsecurity, geopoliticalrelationshipswithnorthernneighbors,populationgrowthandattendant urbansprawl,culturalintegration,andfutureindustries(Ecoscape 2017) toname afew.Certainly,ANEC’sdesignersarenotshortonambition.

644NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.4CharterCities65

4.4CharterCities

WhileANEC’sdesignersaimedtocreatean “invitingportal” toour “northern neighbors” andtheeconomicopportunitiespresentedbytheAsianCentury,the “chartercities” reviewedinthissectiontakethisideamuchfurther.Inessence,a chartercityisacityanditsimmediatehinterland governedaccordingtoacharter thatconstitutesaninternationaltreaty(Gussen 2017b).

SingaporeandHongKonghaveoftencitedexamplesofchartercities.Hong Kong’schartercitystatuswasestablishedattheconclusionofthe1842opiumwar betweenBritainandChinawhenChineseofficialswereforcedtosignHongKong awaytoQueenVictoria(Chakrabortty 2010).Overthenext150years,theisland city,inpartbecauseoftheeconomicincentivesofferedtodevelopersaspartofits charter,turnedinto “Asia’snumberonecapitalistsuccessstory” (Chakrabortty 2010).

Inthetwenty- firstcentury,proponentshavegenerallyadvocatedforcharter citiestobeestablishedinthedevelopingworld,withtheapparentaimofproviding theworld’spoorwithnewopportunitiestomigratetoareaswithstable,fair,and efficientinstitutions,andassuchescapeextremepoverty(Freiman 2013).The considerationofthechartercitymodelfornorthernAustraliareflects,tosome degree,thatchartercityproponentsperceivetheregionasina “developing” state.8 Theproponentsofchartercitiesoftenproposethattheirnewcityincorporates SpecialEconomicZones(SEZ)9 geographicregionsinwhichspecialtaxation and/orregulatoryarrangementsapply toattractinvestorswhoaresensitiveto taxationorregulatoryhurdles(AustralianGovernment 2015).Throughsuch strategies,contemporarychartercitiesseektoemulatetheeconomicsuccessof HongKongorSingapore.10

4.4.1Galt’sGulchLite

EconomistPaulRomer,11 whooriginallydefinedthechartercityterm,hasavision forhundredsofnewchartercitiesindevelopingcountriesacrosstheworld.In

8Australiaisanexceptionalcountryinglobalterms:Ithasdeveloped-nationaffluence,capital stocksandconsumptionlevelsbutadeveloping-nationpatternofpopulationgrowth(Raupach etal. 2012).

9SEZsarealsoreferredtoasFreeTradeZonesandExportProcessingZones(Dovey 2016).

10MiningmagnateLangHancockin1979andhisdaughterGinaRinehartin2013havemadecalls forthecreationofSEZstoboostnorthernAustralia’sdevelopment(Hancock 1979;Australiansfor NorthernDevelopmentandEconomicVision 2013).Inthemid-1980s,theNorthernTerritory GovernmentactuallyestablishedamanufacturingTradeDevelopmentZone(TDZ)inDarwin, Australia’sonlyfreetradezone;however,itcollapsedin2003(WuandWinchester 2015).

11PaulRomer(born1955)isawell-knownAmericaneconomistandiscurrentlychiefeconomist andseniorvicepresidentoftheWorldBank.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Romer ’svision,suchcitieswouldhavetheauthoritytorejectlocallawsand regulationsandtoreplacethemwithnewpoliticalentitieswhoexperimentwith differenttypesofrulesandsubjectthemtoamarket-basedtesting(Miklianand Hoelscher 2014).ToRomer ’swayofthinking,thechartercitymodelenables citizensto “escapefromrulesthatholdthesocietyback” (MiklianandHoelscher 2014)whilegovernmentcontinuestoplayonlyalimitedroleinensuringminimum publichealthandsafetymeasures(Romer 2014).

Romer,ina2014keynoteaddresstothe “NorthernDevelopmentSummit” in Townsville,referredtoManhattan’sgriddedformasapossiblespatialtemplatefor anewchartercitylocatedinoneofnorthernAustralia’s “manycattlestations.” As heexplains:

In1811,therewasonlysettlementinthelowerpartofManhattan … andtherestwas farmland.But,thegovernmentdecidedtocreateoptions.Theyappointedacommission, hiredasurveyor,andsaid,layoutasystemofstreetsontheentireislandofManhattan,all thewayupto155thStreet.Yousurveythosestreetsandavenues,putstonesatevery intersectionsopeopleknowwheretheintersectionswillbe … savethepublicspacesothat youcanleaseitbacktotheranchersifthebestuseisasaranch.12 Butifitturnsouttobe thebestuseasacityofmillionsofpeopledevelopedthere,ifyouhavecreatedthepublic spaceformobilityandutilitycorridorsthenyouwillbeabletodoitinanefficientand cost-effectiveway(Romer 2014).

Romer ’sselectionofManhattan’sgriddedstructureforhisnorthernAustralian chartercityhasprecedentinAustralia ’scitiesinthesouth.Thegrid’srationaland equaldivisionofthelandintopurchasableblockswastheessentialpreconditionfor capitalistsettlementinAustralia(Carter 1987),aselsewhere.AsPaulCarter explainsofAdelaide’sgridintheearlynineteenthcentury: “locatedagainstthe imaginarygrid,theblanknessofunexploredcountrywastranslatableintoablueprintforcolonization … itsgridwasacontainerforrealestate;itsstreetswere conduitsforauctioneers” (Carter 1987).Inlinewithsuchthinking,Romerperceivesthatagridstructurecanopenupcheapandeasilydevelopableland,which couldhelptoaddressAustralia’schronichousingaffordabilityissue asituationhe regardsaseasilysolved:

Justcreatethelandwherehousingcangrow.Ifyoudidthatinvariousplaceshereinthe north,youngpeoplewheretheprospectofowningtheirownhomemightbedelayedby decades,will flocktoaplacewheretheycangoandownahomeatsomethinglikethecost ofbuildingthehomewhichisverylow(Romer 2014).

Romerexplainsthat,beyondattractingdomesticmigrants,suchachartercity willalsorequireanimmigrationdimension.Asheexplainstoensureimmigrants “cometothenorthandstay,theremaybea5-yearconditionontheirvisafor stayinginthenorth oncetheyhaveputdownsomeroots,theycanthentakeout citizenshiporpermanentresidency” (Romer 2014).

Perhapsreflectinghispredilectionforexperimentationinhischartercitymodel, Romerisnotprescriptiveaboutwhattheenablingeconomicdriversforthisnew

12Australiansgenerallyrefertoranchesas “cattlestations.”

664NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.3 Galt’sGulchLite:Romer ’schartercityproposalwastagged “Galt’sGulchLite” bythe QueenslandEconomyWatchinreferencetoAynRand’simaginedlibertariancommunity,Galt’s GulchinColorado,inwhichcapitalistswerefreetoliveunconstrainedbygovernmentregulations anddidnothavetopaytaxestosupportthe “moochers.” Source Montagebytheauthor.Basedon aphotobyBelLaing(https://mymiasart.com/tag/kununurra/ )

northerncitywouldbe.Asheexplainsinambiguousterms, “beforetryingtosolve thejobs- first, firms-firstkindofdebate,whatyoucandoissignalclearlythatwe canaccommodatealotofjobs,alotof fi rmsandalotofresidents” (Romer 2014). Nonetheless,hedoesproposethatsuchurbanizationinnorthernAustraliacould occurincombinationwithsustainablehigh-technologyagriculturaldevelopment (Romer 2014),aswellasapossibleairtransporthub(Romer 2014)(Fig. 4.3).

TheQueenslandEconomyWatch(2014)taggedRomer ’sproposal “Galt’s GulchLite” inreferencetoAynRand’simaginedlibertariancommunity,Galt’s GulchinColorado,inwhichcapitalistswerefreetoliveunconstrainedbygovernmentregulationsanddidnothavetopaytaxestosupportthe “moochers.”13 Certainly,itisnothardtoimaginethatRand’sprotagonist,JohnGalt,a “demigod, capitalist-genius,” wouldbeveryathomeinRomer ’sManhattanofthenorth (Clardy 2012).

13“Galt’sGulch” wasdepictedinAynRand’s1957novel “AtlasShrugged.”

4.4CharterCities67 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.4.2Dilga

WhileRomerregardsSingapore’seconomicmodelasonetopossiblyemulatein northernAustralia,BenjamenGussen’s 14 2017proposalforachartercitytakesthis ideafurther,inthatitseekstoexploitsynergiesbetweenSingaporeandnorthern Australia.AsGussen(2017b)reasons,Singaporeisatinyislandcity-statethatis “starvedofland,” whichseriouslyconstrainsitsgrowth.Meanwhile,innorthern Australia,vastlandscapes “lieempty,” withAustralianstatesactuallycompetingfor people(Gussen 2017b).Gussen,throughhischartercityproposal,aimstomaximizethepotentialsynergiesbetweenthesetwoextremes.

ChristenedDilga,namedforthelocalindigenous(Karadjeri)goddessoffertility, Gussen’schartercityisproposedtobecarvedoutoftheKimberley15 wildernesson a1000km2 site,roughlyequivalenttothesizeofHongKong(Gussen 2017b).

GussenplansthatDilgaisdevelopedbyaholdingchartercitycompany,whichisa jointventurebetweenthegovernmentsofWesternAustraliaandSingaporein whichWesternAustraliaobtainsequitybyprovidingthelandandSingapore obtainsequitybyfundingtheinfrastructure(Gussen 2017a).Heproposesthat,in theinitialstages,thepartnersdraftDilga’sconstitution.Thisconstitution,declared concurrentlybySingapore,WesternAustralia,andtheAustralianGovernment,is thenregisteredwiththeUnitedNations(Gussen 2017a).Gussenenvisagesthatthe citywillremainunderAustraliansovereignty,yetwillbegovernedbyitsownrules andbeabletoofferaseparatecitizenshiptopotentialimmigrantsthatdoesnotlead toresidencyrightselsewhereinAustralia(Gussen 2017b).

GussenproposestoenhanceAustralia’seconomiccomplexitythroughDilga.In contrasttoAustralia’seconomy,whichisheavilydependentonexportingraw materials,theeconomicdriverofDilga,heexplains,couldcomefromexporting “addedvalue finishedproducts” andservicessuchasthosegeneratedby financial centerslikethoseinDubai,orinformationtechnologyclusterslikethoseinSilicon Valley(Gussen 2017a).Ashedepictsit, “privatecapitalwouldcommittosuch projects,giventheassurancesofautonomythatcomedirectlyfromthegovernance structureofchartercities” (Gussen 2017a).

AsGussenexplains,Dilga’s fi rstcitizenswouldcomemainlyfromSingapore butalsofromWesternAustraliaandotherAustralianstates.Heenvisagesthat residentswillbeattractedtoDilgabecausetheydonotpayanyincometaxduring theinitialperiodofcitydevelopmentandtheeasewithwhichtheycanobtain citizenship(Gussen 2017b).OlderpeoplefromSingaporewouldbeattractedto Dilgabecauseofitspromiseofarelaxedretirement.GussenimaginesthatDilga wouldalsobecomepopularwithtourists,especiallyfromPerth,thecapitalcityof WesternAustralia:

14Dr.BenjamenGussenisalecturerinlawattheUniversityofSouthernQueenslandandisavice presidentoftheAustralianLawandEconomicsAssociation(AustLEA)(UniversityofSouthern Queensland 2017).

15TheKimberleyregioncomprisesthenorthwestofWesternAustralia.

684NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.4 Dilga:AsGussenenthuses, “Overtime,thenumberofconstructioncranesonDilga’s skylinemakescitieslikeDubailook flaccid.” Source Montagebytheauthor.Basedonaphotoby RozZito(http://tailoredphotography.blogspot.com.au/2015/10/herewe-arein-wilds-of-kimberley. html)

Theydonotevenneedapassporttogetthere.Moretouristsareattractedasmuchby Dilga’suniqueatmosphereasbytheirfriendsandrelativeswhoalreadylivethere.Investors acrosstheglobeseethisboomand,justlikeinLasVegasinthe1930s,theydeveloptheme parks,casinos,andresorts.Overtime,thenumberofconstructioncranesonDilga’sskyline makescitieslikeDubailook flaccid(Gussen 2017b)(Fig. 4.4).

WhileGussendoesnotreferindetailtotheurbanformofDilga,such descriptionsevokethehedonistic,iconic,high-riseurbanismoftheGoldCoast,no doubtinconjunctionwithswathesofsuburbiaenablinga “relaxedretirement” for wealthySingaporeans.

Beyonditshedonisticexcesses,GussenseesDilgaasplayingagrowingroleon theinternationalstage,absorbingAustralia’srefugeequota.Itwouldalsobea “showcase” fornowobligatorygreentechnologies,especiallyrenewableenergy resourcesandefficientseawaterdesalinationplants(Gussen 2017b).Gussenproposesthat,inpart,tofundsuchinfrastructure,thecityauthoritieswouldgenerate revenuethroughamixofcity-ownedcorporationsandtaxrevenue.

Gussenisseriousabouttheproposal,claiming,undertheleadershipof Singapore’sPrimeMinisterLeeHsienLoongandAustralianPrimeMinister MalcolmTurnbull,theDilgachartercitycouldcometofruitionwithinadecade (Gussen 2017b).Theproposalhasalreadybeenmetwithinterestfromgovernment officialsinSingapore.

4.4CharterCities69 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.4.3RefugeCity16

WhileGussenproposesthatDilgacouldabsorbAustralia’scurrentlimitedrefugee quota,academicKenParish17 hasproposedachartercityinnorthernAustraliathat couldabsorbpotentiallyhugeinfluxesofrefugeesand,inparticular,climatechange refugees.Thiscapacitycouldbeofconsequence,becausecurrently643,000,000 peoplearoundtheworldliveincoastalareasof “lowerheight”—lessthan10m oversealevel(Dorent 2011).Inconjunctionwithclimatechangegenerally,and risingsealevelsspeci fically,itisprojectedthattherewillbeadelugeofrefugeesby 2050,particularlyintheAsianregion namely,144,000,000inChina,63,000,000 inIndia,and62,000,000inBangladesh(Dorent 2011).Whilethese figuresare debated(Lister 2014),theyposeaquestioninrelationtoAustralia’srolein accommodatingthisprojectedsurgeofrefugees.ThecaseforincreasingAustralia’s humanitarianintakehasmoraldimension,givenAustralia’sbloatedgreenhousegas emissions,butitalsohasapragmaticcomponent.AsBernardSaltasks,intheface ofadelugeofrefugees:

WhatdoesAustraliado?Boardandturnbackeveryboat?Leavetherefugeeswithout supportontheKimberleycoast?Plantohelpasmanyaswecanandthenhopewecanship backtensofthousandsofpeople?(Salt 2011).

Clearly,Australiawillneedaplantodealwiththisemergingsituation,particularlygiventhecurrentpanicoverthearrivalofsmallnumbersof “boatpeople.” Overthepastdecade,theAustralianGovernmenthassettledanincreasingshareof refugeesandothertypesofhumanitarianimmigrantsinregionalAustralia,inpartto notinflameresistancetoimmigrationinthecapitalcities.ManyotherWestern countrieshavesimilarlyimplementeddispersalpoliciestodirecthumanitarian migrantstoregionaltownsonthegroundsofburdensharingandregionaldevelopment(Schech 2014).

Parish,takingthisnotionfurther,proposesthatratherthanrefugeeresettlement inregionaltowns,refugeescouldberesettledinanewchartercitycreatedforthat verypurpose, 18 sitedonMelvilleIslandoffthecoastnorthofDarwin19 (Parish 2014)(Figs. 4.5 and 4.6).Heproposesthattherelativeseparationofthechartercity fromDarwin,andothermuchmoredistantmainlandcapitals,willeasethe “communitytensionsanddivisions” sometimesassociatedwithrefugeeresettlementinAustralia.Asheurges:

16Thisnamehasbeencoinedbytheauthor.

17KenParishisalegalacademicatCharlesDarwinUniversityintheNorthernTerritoryandhis particularinterestisintheareasofadministrativeandconstitutionallaw(CharlesDarwin University 2017).

18ThisbuildsonaproposalbyeconomistRobertWiblinsuggestedin2009,shortlyaftera substantialincreaseinrefugeesarrivingbyboat(Parish 2014).

19Interestingly,MelvilleIslandwasalsoputforwardasoneoftwopossiblesitesforaJewish colonyin1939,theotherbeingintheKimberley(Lang field 2001).

704NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.5 RefugeCitylocationplan.KenParishproposesthatRefugeCitycouldbelocated oppositeDarwinonMelvilleIsland. Source Imagebytheauthor

Fig.4.6 RefugeCity:MelvilleIslandoffthecoastnorthofDarwinreimaginedasRefugeCity. Source Montagebytheauthor.BasedonaphotobyLudoKuipers(https://ozoutback.com.au/ Australia/melville/index.html )

Refuge City Melville Island Darwin 10km
4.4CharterCities71 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

IfAustraliansarenotsoenthusiasticaboutsharingtheirgoodluckwithrefugees,acharter cityadministeredbyAustraliacouldatleastallowthemaccesstothegovernmentaland legalinstitutions,whichhaveservedAustraliasowell.Bycrediblyprovidingthoserulesin thisnewcityAustraliawouldmakeitadesirableplaceforinvestment,therebyalso increasingtheresidents’ accesstophysicalcapitalandtechnologicalexpertise(Parish 2014).

Thecharter ’sterms,whichwoulddefinethecity’soperation,includeamuch lowerpersonalandcompanytaxregimesimilartotheSEZmodeldiscussed. Complementingthisisabasicbutlivablesocialsecurity,housing,education,and primaryhealthcaresystem.Thissystemwouldbeonlyavailabletorefugeesand NorthernTerritoryGovernment-employedteachers,nurses,andpoliceworkingin RefugeCity(Parish 2014).Refugeeswouldreceivetemporaryvisasbutcould applyforpermanentbusinessorskilledmigrationvisasiftheyestablishedasuccessfulbusiness.SuchbusinesseswouldpaytheAustralianminimumwagebut wouldnototherwiseberequiredtoofferawardwagesorconditions.Finally, recognitionofforeignprofessionalandtradequalificationswouldbefast-tracked (Parish 2014).

Parishdoesnotreferinanydetailtowhattheeconomicdriversforthenewcity wouldbe,despitesuchspeci ficstipulations.However,giventherefugeepopulation andtherelativelylimitedlandparcel,suchacitycouldbedevelopedaroundlocal andtradedindustries(Porter 2003)suchasconstructionandmanufacturing. Knowledgeindustrieswoulddependontheeducationlevelofthecity’sresidents. Moreover,itislikelythattherefugee-ownedcompanieswouldconstructRefuge City’surbanism.WhileParishdoesnotdescribethespatialformofRefugeCity,it couldbeadense,vibrant,andorganiccitythatowesmuchtothebuildingtraditions ofvarioushomecountriesofrefugeecommunities.Intime,itislikelythatthecity wouldbecharacterizedbyfragmentedurbanislandsbasedaroundparticularrefugeeethnicities becomingacityofcities,ratherthanamonolithicblockof urbanism.

Whilethecreationofsuchachartersoundsconceptuallyplausible,adeeper questionremainsastowhetherrefugees, “withlittlehopeofreturninghome,would jumpatsuchanopportunitytostartanewlifeinsuchanexperimentalcity” (ArnoldKlinginParish 2014).Ifso,throughRefugeCity(orsimilarmodels) Australianscouldassistmanymorerefugeesthantheywouldotherwiseacceptas fully fledgedimmigrants.Furthermore,theproposalcouldleadtoanewbustling entrepreneurialcityonAustralia’snortherncoast(Parish 2014).

4.5MiningCities

Whilethetabledchartercityproposalstendtorelyontransplantingeconomic modelsfromelsewhere(suchasSingaporeorHongKong),thissectionreviews boostedcitiesthatemergeinrelationtothewealthofmineralresourcesfoundinthe north,andinparticularthePilbararegioninthenorthwestofWesternAustralia.

724NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

ThePilbararegionhasbecometheeconomicpowerhouseofAustraliabecauseof itsvastmineraldeposits,representingaround5.5%ofthenation’sgrossdomestic product(Greenetal. 2014)andcontainingthetwohighestexporttonnageportsin Australia(Newmanetal. 2010).Yet,atthesametimethatthePilbararegion producesmoreeconomicwealththanmanycountries,only60,000Australianslive there,scatteredacross500,000km2 ofland(Canavan 2016) astrangeinversionof economicmightandpopulationdensity.

MostofthismeagerpopulationliveinminingcompanytownssuchasDampier andTomPrice,constructedinthe1960s(discussedinthepreviouschapter),aswell asKarratha,PortHedland,Newman,andOnslow,constructedinthe1970sand 1980s.Thedesignlanguageoftheselowdensity,suburbancenterswasinmany casesderivedfromRadburnplanningprinciples fi rstdevelopedattheAmerican suburbofRadburn,NewJersey.InRadburnplanning,vehicularandpedestrian traffi cisseparatedbyinternallandscapedspinesthatfunctionasbothopenspace andpedestrianconnections(Freestoneetal. 2011).InthePilbara,itwasdeemed thatsuchurbandesigninnovationswouldhelptoattractandretainaskilled workforce(Freestoneetal. 2011),despitetheregion’sremoteness.20 Whilethe aspirationsofRadburnplanningwereworthy,inapplicationinthePilbara,they tendedtoleadtoillegible,fragmented,andcar-dominatedsuburbansprawl (IwanickiandJones 2012).Thisis,inpart,becausethearidityandhotclimateoften renderedtheinternallandscapespinesunusable,andtherelatedroadnetworkswere convolutedandineffi cient(Fig. 4.7).

Regardlessoftheirdefi ciencies,inthe1960sand ‘70s,miningcompanies receivedbenefitsfromgovernmentintheformoflowerratesandtaxesinreturnfor buildingsuchcommunities(Storey 2001).However,inrecentdecades,theyhave movedawayfromthismodel.Rather,miningcompaniesnowrelyona fly-in fly-out(FIFO)system,whichallowsthemtoemployminerswhootherwiselivein thesoutherncoastalcities.21 Thissystemhasallowedminingcompaniestoexploit mineralresourcesinremoteareasinthenorthwithouttheneedforproviding permanentsettlement(Megarrity 2011).Nonetheless,thestategovernment,aswell asexistingresidentsofPilbaratowns,hasraisedconcerns.These flowfroma perceptionthat:

… thefulldevelopmentoftheFIFOmodelcouldultimatelyleadtominingtownswith limitedinfrastructureandservicesandnosenseofcommunity;dormitoryslumswherelife isenduredawayfromfamilyleftbehindincitieslikePerth,Darwin,Mackayand Townsville(Dale 2014).

20Thisisnosmalltask.A1980s’ surveyofresidentsofPilbaraminingtownsShayGapand Newmanindicatedthatmorethanone-thirdofrespondentsreported “wearesoremoteherethatwe feeltherestoftheworldhasforgottenus” (Newton 1985).

21TheFIFOmodelhasbecomethedominantmodelforsupplyingmininglaborinthePilbarabut alsoincoalminingoperationsinQueensland.

4.5MiningCities73 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.7 Pre-revitalizationKarrathatowncenter:TheRadburnplanningofKarratha’soriginal towncenterandneighboringsuburbsresultedinanillegible,disconnected,andcar-dominated suburbansprawl. Source Planbytheauthor

Giventhissituation,theWesternAustraliangovernmentisattemptingto leveragemininginthenorthtodeliverboostedcities withalltheamenity, infrastructure,andservicesofAustralia’scapitalcities.

4.5.1Karratha “CityoftheNorth”

Thepolicyframeworkintendedtodeliverthetransformationof “jerrybuilt” mining townslikeKarrathaandPortHedlandintobustlingcitiesisthe “PilbaraCities” policy,fundedbythe “RoyaltiesforRegions” program.Inessence,theRoyalties forRegionsprogramisaboutcounterbalancingtheconcentrationofcapitalgeneratedbyresourceindustriesinPerththroughspatialredistributiontotheregions (Chapmanetal. 2014)and,inparticular,thePilbara(PilbaraDevelopment Commission 2016).Reflectingthis,bytheendof2017–18RoyaltiesforRegionsis projectedtohavecommittedmorethan$1.7billiondirectlytoPilbaraCitiesprojects(Law 2014).

1 2 1 1 4 3 Bulgarra Key 1.
2.
3.
4.
100m Town centre
Public open space Housing Car park Shopping center
744NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.5MiningCities75

ThedevelopmentofKarrathaintoa flagship “cityofthenorth”22 aspartofthe PilbaraCitiesvisionisintendedtofacilitatesustainablegrowthanddevelopment overthelongtermandsupporteconomicactivityanddiversification(Creating CommunitiesAustralia 2010).WhilethemaineconomicdriveristhePilbara’s multibilliondollarresourceinvestments(GovernmentofWesternAustralia 2010), theplanseekstodiversifyKarratha ’s,andtheregion’s,economybyfurther developingindustry(GovernmentofWesternAustralia 2010).Thiscouldpossibly includealong-anticipatedsteel-makingplantthatwouldexportsteeltodomestic andinternationalmarkets.23 Thisindustrialdevelopmentwouldbecomplemented byagriculturalprojectsirrigatedwithexcessgroundwaterresultingfromthe dewateringofminingoperations.

Atthesametimeasdiversifyingtheeconomy,thevisionforKarrathaaimsto “enhancethequalityoflifeforexistingandfutureresidentsanddeliveravibrant andactivatedcitycenter” (CreatingCommunitiesAustralia 2010).AsBrendon Grylls,thenWesternAustralianMinisterforRegionalDevelopment,explained:

ThiswatershedplanwillestablishKarrathaasahighlydesirableplacetolive,workand raiseafamily;afuturecitywithfacilitiesonparwithothermajorcitiesofAustralia (In Mills 2010a)(Fig. 4.8).

Karratha ’stowncenterrevitalizationaimstocreatea “vibrantcommercialheart” (GovernmentofWesternAustralia 2010)andincludesplanningformedium-to high-densitystreet-frontedmixed-useredevelopment,therealignmentandtraffic calmingofanumberofthemainroads,thecreationofnewparksandurbanspaces, amedium-tohigh-riseresort-stylehotel,andaciviccenterincorporatingthe existingcivicbuildings(Figs. 4.8 and 4.9).

InlinewiththistransitionofKarrathafromaminingtownintoa “majorregional city” isaprojectedpopulationofupto50,000people(Mills 2010a),whichrepresentsamorethan300%increasefromthe2011populationof17,000.

4.5.2RebrandingKarratha

GiventhattheKarratha “cityofthenorth” projectisintheprocessofimplementation,itallowsforanexplorationofthekindofmessagesthattheproposedurban formisbeingusedtopromote.Inthenineteenthandearlytwentiethcenturies, architectureinAustralianminingtownsoftenfunctionedasabarometerof “wealth andpermanence,asiftoinspireconfidenceandlongevityinplaceswitha

22ThePlanningGroup(TPG)inPerthwastheurbandesignandplanning firmthatleadKarratha’s redesign.TPGemployedmeontheproject,inanurbandesignvisualizationcapacity,in2010. 23SincethefailureofaBHP-HBIhotbriquettedironplantin2005,nocompanyhasattempted scaledsteelproductioninthePilbara(Greenetal. 2014).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.8 Karrathatowncenterredevelopment:Karratha’sredevelopmentincludedplanningfor medium-tohigh-densitystreet-frontedmixed-useredevelopmentandtherealignmentandtraffic calmingofanumberofthemainroadsKarrathaTerraceandSharpeAvenue. Source PlanbyThe PlanningGrouptracedbytheauthor

Fig.4.9 Karrathatowncenterredevelopment:The “vibrantcommercialheart” ofarevitalized Karratha. Source ImagebyThePlanningGroupandtheauthor

Bulgarra
2.
3.
4.
100m 1 2 3 4
Peggs Creek
Key 1.
Karratha Tce Sharpe Ave Shopping center Pelago tower
764NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

notoriouslyshortlifespan” (Aitchison 2015).24 Itcanbearguedthatasimilar dynamichasbeeninplayinKarratha,wherethetransitionfromacompanytownto a “modernvibrantcity” (Law 2014)issymbolizedthroughurbandensitythatis partlydeployedtoimplypermanence.PlanninginthePilbarainthe1970syielded lightweightbuildingsthatweregenerally “lowroofed,drabandbleary” (Gryllsin Mills 2010b).Incontrast,recentmedium-tohigh-densityurbandesignprojectsin Karrathaserveasasymboliccommitmentbythestategovernmenttotheideathata long-lived,urbaneandvibrantcitywillcoalescearoundsuchboldbeginnings (Williams 2011).

Arguably,thisurbandensityalsorepresentsanattempttotapintothemiraculous “Dubaieffect” inwhichDubaihasbeenabletodiversifyitseconomyawayfrom oil,inpart,throughspectacularrealestatedevelopments(Sheppard 2013).Indeed, formerpremierofWesternAustralia,ColinBarnett,withbackingfromiron-ore magnateAndrewForrest,wentasfarastosuggestthatthePilbaraCitiesvisionwas modeledonDubai(AustralianAssociatedPress 2008).Asheexplained:

PeoplegoandliveinplaceslikeDubai.Talkaboutaharshenvironment,yetthousandsof peoplegotheretolivebecausetheyhaveacomfortableenvironment.Whatwehavedone inthePilbara,inaharshlandscapeandwithaseriouslyhotsummer,aretobuildreplica suburbsofPerth.ThereissomethingtolearnfromDubai.Maybeweneedtobuild apartmentswithair-conditioningandswimmingpools(AustralianAssociatedPress 2008).

Karratha ’snewapartmentbuildingsandluxuryresortprojects suchasthe recentlyconstructednine-storyPelagoWesttower certainlyconformtoBarnett’s visionandseektodefineKarrathaasofferingadensityofdwellingsandattractions whichfarexceedthosetypicallyfoundinminingcompanytowns.

InpartasareactiontothelackoflegibilityofKarratha ’soriginalRadburninspiredtowncenter(Fig. 4.8),muchoftheplanningforKarratha ’stowncenter concerneddefi ningmainstreetsandatowncenter(Law 2014)inspatialand psychologicalterms.Thedesignteamsoughtthisthroughcreatingtwonewcentral streetsthatintersectatrightanglesand,assuch,denotethecentralpointofthe revitalizedprecinct.Thenewstreetpatternalsohasanimportantpsychological dimension.Forinstance,creatinganeasilyidentifiableand “imageable” mainstreet resonateswithKevinLynch’sexplanationthatbylimitingdisorientationwecan improveoursenseof “balanceandwellbeing” (Lynch 1960).

ThesestreetsformadramaticcontrastwithmostofKarratha ’sinhospitable, wide,vehicular-dominatedroadsthroughtheirregularstreettreeplantings,relativelypedestrianizednature,incidentalshadestructures,andemergingalfresco dining.Suchstreets “normalize” Karratha’stowncenterandbringitintolinewith whatyoumight findintheheartofanyofAustralia’scapitalcities.AsTerry

24ManyminingtownsformedinnorthernAustraliainthenineteenthcenturyandearlytwentieth century.Thesehavebecomelargelyghosttowns,withnowsubtleevidenceofbuiltfabricsurvivinginsuchplacesasHallsCreek,MarbleBar,theKimberleyGoldfield,andthePilbaraFieldin WesternAustralia,TennantCreek,PineCreek,andRumJungleintheNorthernTerritory, Cloncurry,Croydon,ChartersTowers,Ravenswood,andMountIsainQueensland.

4.5MiningCities77 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Redman(ex-WesternAustralianNationalspartyleader)explainedaboutthedining experienceofferedbytheupgradedKarrathaterrace:

SittinginthecoffeeshopunderthePelagobuilding,IcouldhavebeensittinginClaremont, NedlandsorStGeorge’sTerrace[inPerth] Itgaveyouthesensethatthisisn’tjusta men’sworkcamp(InLaw 2014).

AswiththePTNCinthe1960s,thebuzzwordinKarratharemains “normalization”—theprocessbywhichitisbelievedthatthe “dustyboomtown” of Karratha,withitsoncehighrents, “FIFOswagger” andlackofamenity,could againbethesortofplacewhereafamilycanaffordtoliveina “decenthouse, whethertheyworkinminingornot” (Williams 2011).Throughthis “normalization” process,itishopedthatresidentscanmakealong-termcommitmenttothe community(Milleretal. 2012).

Beyond “normalization” thereiswidespreadconsensusthatthediversi ficationof industry,awayfromasolerelianceonmining,isacrucialstepinensuring Karratha ’slongevity(Greenetal. 2014).Whilemanyaspectsofthisdiversifi cation extendwellbeyondtheremitofurbandesign,planningforKarratha ’stowncenter hasattemptedtodeliveraspatialframeworkthatcouldenablethisdiversification overtime.AsGreenetal.explain:

whenaboomdriesupwhat’softenleftisthesecondaryandtertiaryinfrastructure.This canbeenoughtosustainacity,butonlyifsuchinfrastructurehasalreadybeencreated (2014).

IntherevitalizationofKarrathatowncenter,thistakestheformofdesignated mixed-useretail,commercial,entertainment,accommodation,andculturalprecincts.Thepresumptionisthatadiversityofco-locatedlanduses,deployedata mediumtohighdensity,willstimulateknowledgediffusionandthuseconomic growthanddiversification(OECD 2012).Landcorp,thestatelanddeveloper,has givenexpressiontotheseaspirationsinanewprojectintheretailprecinct, “The Quarter ” whichaimstoprovide, “amajorboostingrowinganddiversifyingthe localeconomy,providingincreasedopportunitiesforexistinglocaloperatorswhile alsoattractingnewbusinessesintothecommunity” (InDoric 2014).

ItisattheartsandcommunityprecinctthatthedesiretoreshapeKarratha’s imageasamining-onlytownreachesitszenith.This$40,000,000precinctwillbe locatedneartheentrancetothetownatthesouthernendofoneofthenewstreets.It isplannedtoincludea450-seattheater,newlibrary,rooftopcinema,artgallery, amphitheater,andlocalhistorymuseum(ABCNews 2014) allofwhichare aimedateconomicdiversificationand,byimplication,thelong-termeconomic viabilityofKarratha.AsshirepresidentPeterLongexplainsaboutthecultural precinct:

Itgivesanextradimensiontothetowninsteadofbeingadormitorysuburbforamine. Whenwe’vegotatheatre,we’vegotculturalactivitiesandintellectualactivities.Itjust givesusawholenewaspecttotheshireandforpeopletolivehere.Itjustmakesitamuch betterplacetobe(InABCNews 2014).

784NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

ThisprojectcanbeunderstoodasamodestversionofprojectslikeAbuDhabi’s newculturalhub,whichincludestheGuggenheimAbuDhabi,designedbyFrank Gehry,aperformingartscenterbyZahaHadid,andtheLouvreAbuDhabibyJean Nouvel.Suchprojectsaimtorebrandcities,whicharedependentontheextraction ofprimaryresourcesascentersofculture(withapresumedattendantincreasein longevity).

4.5.3Karratha’sProgress

Sixyearson,itisevidentthatthePilbaraCitiespolicyhasresultedinsignificant newcommunityinfrastructureinKarrathaintheformofnewparks,playgrounds, theaters,hospitals,leisurecomplexes,andschools(Greenetal. 2014),aswellasa signifi cantincreaseinhousing.Atthesametime,theprojectsconstructedaspartof therevitalizationofKarrathatowncenterhavebeguntoreshapethepublicimaginationofthePilbaraasbeingaplacethatis,tosomedegree, “normalized” and morediverse,family-friendly,andsociallycohesive.

DespitesuchostensiblypositiveachievementsofthePilbaraCitiespolicy,itis tooearlytotellwhatcontributionthedesignofKarratha’scenterwillmakein getting50,000peopletoliveinthetown orindeedwhetherthis figurewillbe realizedinthelongertermatall.Ontheonehand,improvedschoolretentionrates25 (Watt 2016)indicatethatfamiliesarechoosingtostayinKarrathaduringthe transitionofchildrenfromprimarytohighschool aperiodthathasoftenbeena catalystformanyfamiliestoreturntoAustralia’scapitalcities

Ontheotherhand,Karratha’spopulationactuallydroppedbetween2011and 2016by646people.Asaresult,in2014thevalueofhousinginKarrathahadfallen 30%fromthepeakoftheminingboom(Law 2014),rentshadhalved,andrecord numbersofpropertieswerelistedforsale(Smyth 2014).Curiously,thenorthwest townofBroome,whichisroughlythesizeofKarratha,grewby1200peopleinthe sameperiod despitenotreceivingtheleveloffundingassociatedwiththePilbara Citiesprogram(AustralianBureauofStatistics 2016).

OnlytimewilltellwhetherKarrathawillbeatwenty- firstcenturyequivalentof theghosttownsofWesternAustralia’sEasternGoldfieldsfromthenineteenth century(Marks 2010);however,apopulationincreaseof300%inthenearto midtermislookingincreasinglyunlikely(Mills 2010a).

25“Retentionrates” inthissentencedoesnotrefertostudentsgenerallystayingatschool.

4.5MiningCities79 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.6LifestyleCities

AnotherindustrythatseekstoleveragetheenvironmentofnorthernAustraliais tourism.TourismisoneofthemainindustrysectorswithinnorthernAustralia, capitalizingonthebeautyandwildnessofthenaturalenvironmentandworld heritagesites.Theseareattractivedestinations,particularlyforinternationalvisitors (RegionalAustraliaInstitute 2013).Reflectingtheinternationalappealofthenorth, in2009northernAustraliawasthedestinationofchoicefor36%ofinternational overnightstays(comparedtoonly5%ofdomesticovernightstays).Northern Queenslandattractedthelargestproportionofsuchtouristsacrossthenorth,followedbytheNorthernTerritoryandWesternAustralia’snorthregions,respectively (RegionalAustraliaInstitute 2013).

Thespecifi cattractionsusedtodrawtouriststonorthernAustraliavaryfrom regiontoregion.TourismthroughouttheKimberleydependsonimagesofisolation andadventure,marketingitselfas “Australia ’slastfrontier” (Head 1999).Tourism inFarNorthQueenslandisfueledbythetwinattractionsoftheGreatBarrierReef andtheWetTropics,whicharebothworldheritage–listedsites(BohnetandPert 2010).Finally,thenortherntownofBroomeattractstouristswithitsbeachandits alternative “Australasian” culture.

ThereisgeneralconsensusthatthefutureoftourismwillseenorthernAustralia promotedasanichetourismdestination(Rabyetal. 2014)inwhichthewildness andbeautyofitslandscapes(Nixetal. 2013),inconjunctionwithdynamic,culturallyrichcity-basedexperiences,willbethemajorattractions.Inthecontextofan ongoingglobalbiodiversitycrisisinwhich “natural” experienceswillbein increasinglyshortsupply(McNeillandEngelke 2016),therestoftheworldis likelytoincreasinglytreasurenorthernAustralia ’swildernessqualitiesandbiologicaldiversity(Dale 2014).

TheAustralianGovernmentestimatesthatthenumberofinternationaltourists visitingnorthernAustraliawillreach2,000,000by2030(Robb 2014).Itprojects thatmuchofthisincreaseintouristswillcomefromAsia.AsAndrewRobb,the thenfederaltrademinister,explainedin2014:

The[Asian]region’smiddleclasswillbegrowingfrom600milliontomorethan3billion, fromIndiatoChinaandeverycountryinbetween,overthenext20to30years.Itisalmost inconceivable.Thiswilldriveextraordinarydemandsfor … first-worldlifestylesand servicesandtourism… (Robb 2014).

AccordingtotheAustralianGovernment,thismiddle-classexplosionhas potentiallyhugeimplicationsbecausemuchofthispopulation(inSoutheastAsia andSouthernChina)arewithinthreeto fivehours’ flyingtimeofnorthernAustralia (AustralianGovernment 2015).

804NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

4.6.1TheGoldCoastandSunshineCoast

Giventhissituation,whatisthepotentialoftourismtofuelthegrowthofdramaticallyexpanded “lifestylecities” inthenorthofAustralia?Theexampleofthe GoldCoastandtheSunshineCoastinQueenslandarecertainlyinstructiveinthis respect.Havingtheirbeginnings26 inthelate1940swhentheGoldCoasthada populationofabout13,000peopleandtheSunshineCoasthadonlyafewthousand, theydifferfromotherAustraliancitiesintheirdemography,theireconomy,their politics,andmostofallbecausetheyhavelargenumbersoftouristswhovisiteach yearforthelifestyletheyoffer(Mullins 1990).Bythe1990s,theGoldCoastand theSunshineCoastwerenotonlythelargestcitiesinAustraliadevotedtotourism, theywerealsothefastestgrowingofthecountry’sbigcities(Mullins 1992).27

ThepoliticaldifferencebetweenthesecoastaltouristcitiesandotherAustralian citiesisthehighlevelof “urbanentrepreneurship” theyfoster.Thisentrepreneurshipis,inpart,expressedthroughlocalgovernmentsandtheprivatesectorworking togethertotraptouristspending,aswellasluringinvestmentcapitalfortheirurban projects(Mullins 1990).Insuchlifestylecities,imageiscritical,withthebuilt environmentsastheprincipalconveyorsofcertainmessages.TheGoldCoastand itsiconichigh-riseurbanism “exudesimagesofconfidence,vibrancy,color,sparkle,profit,dynamism” (Mullins 1990).Inspatialterms,thislifestyle-driven urbanismhasbeendevelopedaslong,narrowbandsofcoastalsettlementalongthe region’s “sinequanon”—itsbeautifulsandybeaches(CooperandLemckert 2012).

4.6.2BoomBoomBroome28

Givenitssuccess,theGoldCoast,inparticular,hasbeenamodelforboostedcity developmentinthenorthgenerally.TheCountryLiberalPartywantedtocreatea GoldCoast–stylewaterfrontdevelopmentatWeddell29 inthelatetwentiethcentury (ABCNews 2009).Morerecentlyin2010,theAustraliandemographerBernard Salt30 claimedAustraliashouldplanforanewcity “likeaGoldCoastofthewest”

26“Beginnings” inthisrespectrefersonlytoEuropeanAustralianhistory.Thesiteofwhatwasto becometheGoldCoastwas,inpart,indigenousburialgroundsandhasafardeeperhistorythan thatcountenancedinthissection.

27Whiletourismonlyprovidestemporarypopulationinfluxes,theprofitandrevenuethattourists generatehasprovidedaneconomicdriverformigrantsfromsouthernAustraliancitiestorelocate totouristhubssuchastheGoldCoast.Thisiscomplementedby “seachangers” and “tree changers” (Salt 2011),whooftenmovetosuch “lifestylecities” intheirretirement.

28ThisnamewascoinedbyBernardSalttodescribeanexpandedtwenty- firstcenturyBroome (Salt 2011).

29WeddellisnowaproposedsatellitecityofDarwin.

30BernardSaltisapartneratKPMG,anauthorandjournalistfor “TheAustralian” and “Herald Sun” newspapersaswellasbeingchairmanoftheTourismForecastingCommittee. 4.6LifestyleCities81

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.4.10 BoomBoomBroome:BernardSaltinhis2011book “TheBigTilt” proposesthat Broome,along-establishedtourismtownwith12,000residents,couldbecomeabig,boldcityby themiddleofthetwenty-firstcentury. Source Montagebytheauthor.BasedonphotosbyJenna Rogers(http://www.skyscrapercity.com/showthread.php?t=205272&page=16 )Jason/Clare(https: //www.flickr.com/photos/jasonclare/sets/72157622280103604 )andDarrenEngland(http://www. couriermail.com.au/news/queensland/future-brisbane/future-brisbane-bernard-salt-to-give-keynoteaddress-on-citys-future-at-business-lunch/news-story/f0e3c969fc5eef8a669e21a0ecd91e5e)

tocopewithAustralia ’sprojectedpopulationgrowth(Narushima 2010).Inhis 2011book “TheBigTilt,” SaltproposesthatBroome,along-establishedtourism townwith12,000residents(RegionalAustraliaInstitute 2013),couldbedeveloped tobecomeabig,boldcitybythemiddleofthetwenty-firstcentury,bothprojecting andprotectingAustralia ’s “claimtotherichesofthenorthwest” (Salt 2011) (Fig. 4.10).

Saltproposesthattheeconomicdriversofgrowthforthisbiggerandboldercity (a “GoldCoastofthewest”)willstemfromChina’sgrowingmiddleclass(2011). FacilitatedbyadirectairlinkbetweenBroomeandShanghaiandanupgraded existinginternationalairport,SaltspeculatesthatBroomecouldbeaweekenderfor China’swealthyelite.Asheexplains,itoffers “theclosestaccesstowesternculture,lifestyleandsecurity” intheregion(Salt 2011).

SaltfurtherproposesthatBroomecouldevolveasthecapitalofthenorthwest, basedonpossibledirect flightstoShanghai,growingbusinessconnectionswith China,andtheregion’senergyandresources(Salt 2011).Moreover,heproposesa signifi cantmilitarycontingentasapotentialeconomicdriverforBroome.Such thinkingnodoubtstemsfromtheroleofDarwin’sRobertsonBarracks,whichis

824NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

alreadyhometoaround4500AustralianmilitarypersonnelinDarwin(Tanter 2012)andLavarackBarracksinTownsville,whichemploysaround7000defense workers(Noble 2014).Bothofthesegreatlysupportlocalindustries.Infact,itis feltthatoneofTownsville’sgreateststrengthsisitsstatusasa “garrisoncity” (Tyrelletal. 2010).

Salt’saspiration findssomeexpressioninstategovernmentefforts.Indeed,the KimberleyDevelopmentCommissionaimstoincreasethepopulationoftheShire ofBroome’spopulationto48,500by2036 amorethan290%increasein approximately20years(KimberleyDevelopmentCommission 2015)andagrowth thatthecommissionregardsas “achievable,practicalandsustainable”31 (2015). Theprojecteddriverforthisgrowthistourism,whichistargetedtogrowtoan outputvalueoftourismto$700,000,000peryear(KimberleyDevelopment Commission 2015),inconjunctionwithagricultureandfoodproduction,minerals/ energyproduction,tourism,andabroadeningrangeofindustrialactivity (KimberleyDevelopmentCommission 2015).

4.6.3LordMcAlpine’sBroome

WhileSaltmakesacompellingcaseforboostingBroometobeaninternational “lifestylecity” ofthenorthwest,heisnotthe firsttohavehadsuchvisions.Inthe 1980s,LordAlistairMcAlpine(1999)32 pursuedavision “tochangeatiredold townintoamoderntouristresort withoutdestroyingthesouloftheplace.” To thisend,whennotinLondonworkingastreasurertotheU.K.government, McAlpinewasinBroomesnappingupitsheritagebuildingsaswellasplanningfor itsgrowth(BolleterandWeller 2013).Giventheprevailingrulethatnobuildingin Broomeshouldbe “tallerthanapalmtree,” McAlpinespeculatedthatultimatelythe “townwillhavenochoicebuttospread” intheformofsatellitetownsfurtherup theDampierPeninsulatothenorthofBroome.Asheexplained:

Thesesatellitetownsshouldbesurroundedbyanexpanseofbush,eachofthemsetback fromthesea’sshore.Communicationswillthenbecomeaproblemandtheanswertothat problemwillbe,ofcourse,arailway.Arailwaythatlinkstownsandthenlinksthesetowns withvillagesonthecoast,villageswithsmallpopulationsthatsupplytheaccesstothesea thattouristsandresidentsbothwilldemand(McAlpine 1999).

McAlpineendedupdeliveringasuccessfulresort(theCableBeachClub),which payshomagetothetraditionalstyleofbuildingsinBroomeanditsmulticultural

31ThisassessmentwasmadebytheKimberleyDevelopmentCommissioninrelationtothe Kimberleyregion’sprojectedpopulationgrowth,withinwhichBroome’sgrowthisprojectedto occur(2015).

32LordAlistairMcAlpinewasMargaretThatcher ’streasurysecretary.McAlpinefellinlovewith Broomeinthe1970sandbecameamajorinvestorinBroomeinthe1980s,wherehewouldlive forseveralmonthsayear.

4.6LifestyleCities83 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

heritage,aswellasattractinganinternationalclientele(McAlpine 1999).However, localresistancetochange,difficultiesinupgradingBroome’sairporttointernational status,andapilotstrikethatdecimatedtheBroometourismindustryfrustratedhis biggerplansforBroome.

4.7SatelliteCities

Anothertypeofnewcitytypethathasfoundexpressioninbothnorthernand southernAustraliaisthesatellitecity literallyanew,smallercitythat “orbits” an establishedlargercity.Ashasbeendiscussedinpreviouschapters,satellitecities wereafeatureoftheAustraliangardencitiesmovementoftheearlyto mid-twentiethcentury(Freestone 1982)andtheDURD’spopulationdecentralizationeffortsinthe1970s(Rushman 1976).

AnumberofsatellitecitiesexistinnorthernAustralia.TheseincludeWeddell’s 1980spredecessor,theDarwinsatellitecityofPalmerston,theRadburn-planned satellitecityofPortHedland,SouthHedland(Neilson 1983),andtheHeavitreeGap satellitecityofAliceSprings(Carter 2016).

4.7.1Weddell

ThemostsignificantsatellitecityplannedinthenorthofAustraliaisWeddell,an adjunctofDarwin.ThebuildingofasatellitecityatWeddellhasbeeninthe planningofDarwinsinceatleastthe1980swhenitwastheRegionalStructure Plan’spreferredalternativeforDarwin’surbandevelopment(TaylorandLea 1988). Nonetheless,itwasnotuntil2009thattheNorthernTerritoryGovernment announceditwouldspendnearlythree-quartersofabilliondollars(ABCNews 2009)tobuildWeddell.OneofthemaindriversforDarwinadoptingasatellitecity modelofgrowthisthatmuchofthelandimmediatelyadjacenttoDarwinis constrainedbywaterlogging,stormsurge, flooding,andbitinginsectslikemidges andmosquitos.

Beyondbeingaresponsetosuchpragmaticconstraints,thisnewsatelliteis envisagedtobea “tropical,sustainableandlivablecity” forthefutureforupto 50,000people(Urbanalyst 2011),whichshouldbea “modelforcitiesandtownsof thefuture” aswellasa “worldclassgreencity” (InBolleterandWeller 2013) (Fig. 4.10).AdesigncompetitionwasheldfortheurbandesignofWeddell,which waswonbyDarwin’swell-respectedTroppoArchitects(Urbanalyst 2011),whoare knownfortheirlightandopenarchitecturaldesignsthatareresponsivetothe tropicalclimate,cultureandlandscapeoftheregion,andworld-renownedlandscapearchitectsTaylorCullityLethlean(TCL).Thedesignteamproposesthatthe citytakestheformofastringofvillageswithwalkableandorganiclayoutsshaped by andconnectedto thehydrologyofthepristineBennettsCreek,associated

844NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Mangroves/ wetlands

Fig.4.11 Weddell:AnewsatelliteforDarwinthatistobeatropical,sustainable,andlivablecity forupto50,000people. Source PlanbyTroppoandTCLtracedbytheauthor 4.7SatelliteCities85

wetlands,andfringingmangroves(TroppoarchitectsandTaylorCullityLethlean 2011)(Fig. 4.11).

TroppoandTCLproposethattheeconomicdriversoftheprojectarethe “usual” commercialopportunitiesaswellastourismandenvironmentalmanagement the cityhousingaSustainableCityResearchCentre(TroppoarchitectsandTaylor CullityLethlean 2011).TheyalsoventurethatWeddellcouldalsobecomean “arts village,” withrelatedemploymentandbusinessdevelopmentopportunities(Troppo architectsandTaylorCullityLethlean 2011)(Fig. 4.11).

4.7.2WeddellWorries

AnumberofcommentatorshavecitedtheWeddellsatellitecityproposalasbeinga concern,despiteitsintriguingdesign.PaulCarterhasgoneasfarastosaythatthe plannednewcityis “beyondbeingirrationalonanyordinaryprinciplesoftown planning” (Carter 2016).Suchcriticisms flowfromtheconcernthat,becauseof Darwin’spopulationdynamicsand(untilrecently)extremerealestatevalues, Weddellwilllikelyhouseasubstantialproportionof “atrisk” populations(Carson 2010).WhileDarwinisgenerallyregardedasa “trulycosmopolitancity,noticeable foritslackofethnicseparation ” (TaylorandLea 1988),underthesurfaceDarwin’s

100m
Arterial road Key 1.
2.
3.
4. Urban form 5. Village square 3 4 4 2 5 5 1 1
Bennet’s Creek
Oval
Natural pool
julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

rapidgrowthandincreasingdiversityhavecreatedchallengesforgenerating interactionandtolerancebetweendifferentethnicgroups(Lobo 2014).Theconcern thatWeddellraisesisthatbyrelocatingpeoplewhocannotaffordrealestatewithin Darwintoasatellitecitysome40kmfromthecenterofDarwincouldcompound socioeconomicstrati ficationbetweenthosewhocanaffordtoliveinDarwinand thosewhocannot(Carson 2010).Certainly, “disasters ” suchasthe Radburn-plannedsatelliteofPortHedlandinSouthHedland(Neilson 1983)and HeavitreeGapinAliceSprings(Carter 2016)havealsotendedtocompound socioeconomicstrati ficationbetweencentralandsatellitecommunities.

Inpartbecauseoftheseissues,theprojectasacheckeredhistory.Boostedbythe ascendantNorthernTerritoryLaborpartyin2009,itwasdeemed “uneconomic” anddumpedbytheCountryLiberalPartyfollowingtheirelectoralsuccessin2012 (Terzon 2016).Finally,withLaborregainingpowerin2016,theyhave “committed toisreignitingtheproject” (Terzon 2016);however,itslocationhaspotentially shiftedtotheCoxPeninsulaacrossDarwin’sharbortotheeast.Whilethiswoulda moredramaticsite,navigatingtherequiredlegalprocesstosecureapprovalfrom theindigenousownersofmostofCoxPeninsulashouldnotbetakenlightly.

4.8Conclusion

Theneworboostedcityproposalstabledinthischapterareallnebulousyet enticing,andpregnantwithpossibility.Moreover,theyoffersomecluesastowhat typeofcitytheadditional3,700,000northernAustralians(projectedbythefederal government)mayintimecallhome(AustralianGovernment 2015).However,with thisgrandtourofhypotheticalcitiesover,thefollowingchaptersetstowork consideringthekindsofbarriersthatcouldcurtailtheirtransformationintophysical reality,inthehotbrightlightofnorthernday.

References

ABCNews(2009)NewcityplannedfortheNorthernTerritory.ABCnews. http://www.abc.net. au/news/2009-02-04/new-city-planned-for-the-northern-territory/283480.Accessed3Sept 2017

ABCNews(2014)Karrathaculturalprecinctgetsnod.ABCNews. http://www.abc.net.au/news/ 2014-02-20/karratha-cultural-centre-gets-nod/5272752 .Accessed6June2016

AitchisonM(2015)Backtothefuture:FIFO,miningandurbanisationinAustralia.In: GoldswainP,SullyN,TaylorW(eds)Outofplace:occasionalessaysonAustralianregional communitiesandbuiltenvironmentsintransition.UniversityofWesternAustraliaPublishing, Perth Architecture&design(2013)WinnersofCAPIThetiCALcompetition. http://www. architectureanddesign.com.au/news/winners-of-capithetical-competition.Accessed1Aug2017 AustralianAssociatedPress(2008)WA:AndrewForrestbacksBarnett’sDubaiplan.Australian AssociatedPress. http://search.proquest.com/docview/448194740?accountid=14681 .Accessed 20Oct2016

864NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

AustralianBureauofStatistics(2016)Census.AustralianGovernment. http://www.abs.gov.au/ websitedbs/D3310114.nsf/Home/Census?OpenDocument&ref=topBar.Accessed10Nov2017

AustralianGovernment(2015)OurNorth,ourfuture:whitepaperondevelopingNorthern Australia.AustralianGovernment,Canberra AustraliansforNorthernDevelopmentandEconomicVision(2013)Article-MrsGinaRinehart, “Greetingsfromtheluckycountry(?)” http://www.andev-project.org/resources/article-mrsgina-rinehart-greetings-from-the-lucky-country-australian-resources-and-investment/ Accessed03Sept2017

BohnetIC,PertPL(2010)Patterns,driversandimpactsofurbangrowth astudyfromCairns, Queensland,Australiafrom1952to2031.LandscapeUrbanPlan97(4):239–248

BolleterJ,WellerR(2013)MadeinAustralia:thefutureofAustraliancities.Universityof WesternAustraliaPublishing,Perth CanavanM(2016)WhyAustralianeedsmore ‘middle’ cities.QueenslandCountryLife. http:// www.queenslandcountrylife.com.au/story/4310329/why-australia-needs-more-middle-cities/ . Accessed04Sept2017

CarsonD(2010)WhichwaytoWeddell?DemographicchallengesforDarwin’snewsatellitecity. CharlesDarwinUniversity,Darwin CarterP(1987)TheroadtoBotanyBay:anessayinspatialhistory.Faber,London CarterP(2016)Lines.PostcolonialStud19(1):94–96

ChakraborttyA(2010)PaulRomerisabrillianteconomist– buthisideaforchartercitiesisbad. Theguardian. https://www.theguardian.com/science/2010/jul/27/paul-romers-charter-citiesidea.Accessed05Sept2017

ChapmanR,TontsM,PlummerP(2014)Resourcedevelopment,localadjustment,andregional policy:resolvingtheproblemofrapidgrowthinthePilbara,WesternAustralia.JRural CommunityDev.9(1):72–86

CharlesDarwinUniversity(2017)KenParish.CharlesDarwinUniversity. http://www.cdu.edu.au/ law/staff-profiles/ken-parish.Accessed18Dec2017

ClardyA(2012)Galt’sGulch:AynRand’sutopiandelusion.UtopianStud23(1):238–262

CohenSB(2000)Thepolyurbanfrontierinpost-industrialIsrael.In:Developingfrontiercities. Springer,Berlin,pp255–271

CooperJAG,LemckertC(2012)Extremesea-levelriseandadaptationoptionsforcoastalresort cities:aqualitativeassessmentfromtheGoldCoast,Australia.OceanCoastManag64:1–14 CreatingCommunitiesAustralia(2010)Karrathacommunityrevitalisationplan.Landcorp,Perth DaleA(2014)Beyondthenorth-southculturewars:reconcilingNorthernAustralia’srecentpast withitsfuture.Springer,NewYork

DaleA,CampbellA,DouglasM,RobertsonA,WallaceR(2014)Frommythtoreality:new pathwaysfornortherndevelopment.In:RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(eds)Northern development:creatingthefutureAustralia.ADCForum,Melbourne DesmondM(2013)Capithetical:acapitalcityfortomorrow.LandscapeArchitectureAustralia 138:23

DorentN(2011)Transitorycities:emergencyarchitectureandthechallengeofclimatechange. Development54(3):345–351

Doric(2014)NewheartforKarrathaCitycentre.Doric. http://www.doricgroup.com.au/news/ 2014/214-new-heart-for-karratha-city-centre.html .Accessed06June2016

DoveyK(2016)Urbandesignthinking.BloomsburyAcademic,London Ecoscape(2017)Australia’snorthernecocity.Ecoscape. http://www.anecproject.com.au/ Accessed04Sept2017

FreestoneR(1982)ThegardencityideainAustralia.GeogrRes20(1):24–48

FreestoneR,GarnautC,IwanickiI(2011)Coldwarheritageandtheplannedcommunity: WoomeraVillageinoutbackAustralia.IntJHeritageStud18(6):541–563

FreimanC(2013)Cosmopolitanismwithinborders:onbehalfofchartercities.JApplPhilos30 (1):40–52

GleesonB(2010)Thegreatestspoiler:salvationinthecities.Prosperorperish.GriffithRev 29:57–66

References 87 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

GovernmentofWesternAustralia(2010)Karrathacityofthenorthplan.GovernmentofWestern Australia,Perth

GreenJ,NewmanP,MitchellJ(2014)Pilbara2050:ensuringthelongtermviabilityofthePilbara. CurtinUniversity,Perth

GussenB(2017a)Canchartercities ‘anabolise’ theAustralianFederation?PublicAdmPolicy20 (1):18–38

GussenB(2017b)AproposalforaSingaporean ‘chartercity’ inAustralia.TheStraitsTimes. AproposalforaSingaporean ‘chartercity’ inAustralia.Accessed01Aug2017

HancockL(1979)WakeupAustralia.EJDwyer,Sydney

HaratsisBP(2010)Australia2050:bigAustralia?.DigitalPrintAustralia,Adelaide HeadL(1999)Thenorthernmythrevisited?Aborigines,environmentandagricultureintheOrd RiverIrrigationScheme,stagesoneandtwo.AustGeogr30(2):141–158

IwanickiI,JonesD(2012)Learningfromaridplanninganddesignhistoryandpractice:from WoomeratocreatingthenewRoxbyDownscommunities.In:PIA2012:Planningfora SunburntCountry:Buildingresilientcommunitiesthroughplanning:Proceedingsofthe PlanningInstituteofAustralia2012NationalCongress,[PIA],pp1–19

KaesehagenD(2014)Settlementpatterns:effectivemodelsformanagingagrowingpopulationin northernAustralia.In:RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(eds)Northerndevelopment: creatingthefutureAustralia.ADCForum,Melbourne KimberleyDevelopmentCommission(2015)2036andbeyond:aregionalinvestmentblueprint fortheKimberley.KimberleyDevelopmentCommission,Kununurra LangfieldM(2001)PeoplingoftheNorthernTerritorypart2:thewhiteelephantlaidtorest?J NorthernTerritoryHist12:17–26

LawP(2014)WA’s$1.7billionquestion:canPilbaracitiesbecomereality?PerthNow. http:// www.perthnow.com.au/news/western-australia/was-17-billion-question-can-pilbara-citiesbecome-reality/story-fnhocxo3-1226857364273 .Accessed25May2016

ListerM(2014)Climatechangerefugees.CritRevIntSocPolitPhilos17(5):618–634

LoboM(2014)Everydaymulticulturalism:catchingthebusinDarwin,Australia.SocCultGeogr 15(7):714–729

LynchK(1960)Theimageofthecity.TheMITPress,Cambridge MarksK(2010)Tearsofthesun:miningfeverandthemakingofanation[Paperin:Stillthe LuckyCountry?Schultz,Julianne(ed.).].GriffithRev28:13

McAlpineA(1999)Bagmantoswagman:talesofBroome,theNorthWestandotherAustralian adventures.Allen&Unwin

McNeillJR,EngelkeP(2016)Thegreatacceleration:Anenvironmentalhistoryofthe anthropocenesince1945.HarvardUniversityPress,Cambridge MegarrityL(2011) ‘Necessaryandurgent’?:ThepoliticsofnorthernAustralia1945-75.JRoy AustHistSoc97(2):136

MiklianJ,HoelscherK(2014)Ataleofnewcities:thefutureofurbanplanninginthedeveloping world.HarvardIntRev35(4):13

MillerE,VanMegenK,BuysL(2012)Diversificationforsustainabledevelopmentinruraland regionalAustralia:howlocalcommunityleadersconceptualisetheimpactsandopportunities fromagriculture,tourismandmining.RuralSoc22(1):2–16

MillsM(2010a)KarrathatobecomemajorPilbaracity.ReedBusinessInformation. http://search. proquest.com/docview/928948073/abstract/63E324FB136B4895PQ/1?accountid=14681 Accessed20Oct2016

MillsM(2010b)RegionalrevitalisationforPilbaraminingtowns.ReedBusinessInformation. http://search.proquest.com/docview/928948186?accountid=14681.Accessed20Oct2016

MullinsP(1990)Touristcitiesasnewcities:Australia’sGoldCoastandSunshineCoast.Aust Planner28(3):37–41

MullinsP(1992)Citiesforpleasure:theemergenceoftourismurbanizationinAustralia.Built Environ18(3):187–198

884NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

NarushimaY(2010)Australiamustplannewcitytocopewithpopulation.TheSydneyMorning Herald. http://www.smh.com.au/national/australia-must-plan-new-city-to-cope-with-population20100125-muho.html.Accessed13Feb2018

NeilsonL(1983)Howlocalgovernmentcomestocompanytowns.AustPlanner21(4):91–92 NewmanP,CurtinUniversitySustainabilityPolicyInstitute,BilsboroughD,ReedP,Parsons Brinckerhoff,MouritzM,Hassell(2010)Pilbaracities:fromprojectstoplaces the2 challenges,4themesand10practicesofhowtodoit.CurtinUniversitySustainabilityPolicy Institute,Perth

NewtonPW(1985)Planningnewtownsforharsharidenvironments:anevaluationofShayGap andNewmanminingtowns,Australia.Ekistics52(311):180–188

NixH,MackeyB,TraillB,WoinarskiJ(2013)ThenatureofnorthernAustralia:itsnaturalvalues, ecologicalprocessesandfutureprospects.ANUPress,Acton NobleR(2014)TheroleofnortherndevelopmentinsupportingAustralia’snationalsecurityand theroleofthedefenceforcesindrivingnortherndevelopment.In:RouxA,FaubellM, McGauchieD(eds)Northerndevelopment:creatingthefutureAustralia.ADCForum, Melbourne

NorthernTerritoryGovernment(2016)WhitePaperonDevelopingNorthernAustraliaThe NorthernTerritoryPerspective.NorthernTerritoryGovernment,Darwin OECD(2012)Compactcitypolicies:acomparativeassessment.OECDGreenGrowthStudies OzOutbackTheTiwiIslands-MelvilleIsland.OzOutback. https://ozoutback.com.au/Australia/ melville/slides/1976090118.html .Accessed10Jan2018

ParishK(2014)Achartercityforrefugees?ClubTroppo. http://clubtroppo.com.au/2014/10/20/acharter-city-for-refugees/ .Accessed04Sept2017

PennayB(2005)Makingacityinthecountry:theAlbury-WodongaNationalGrowthCentre Project1973–2003.UNSWPress,Kensington

PilbaraDevelopmentCommission(2016)PilbaraCitiesInitiative.GovernmentofWestern Australia. http://www.pdc.wa.gov.au/our-focus/plibara-cities .Accessed20June2016

PorterM(2003)Theeconomicperformanceofregions.RegStud37(6–7):549–578

QueenslandEconomyWatch(2014)PaulRomerbacksGalt’sGulchforNorthernAustralia. QueenslandEconomyWatch. https://queenslandeconomywatch.com/2014/07/01/paul-romerbacks-galts-gulch-for-northern-australia/ .Accessed01Aug2017

RabyG,HarrisonR,BellR,ChantD,GuppyD,HardingS,McKayH,LanciniL,TanKS,LuV (2014)Australiaandtheregion.In:RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(eds)Northern development:creatingthefutureAustralia.ADCForum,Melbourne RaupachM,McMichaelA,AlfordK,FultonE,FinniganJ,GriggN,LevesF,MandersonL, WalkerB(2012)LivingscenariosforAustraliaasanadaptivesystem.In:RaupachM, McMichaelA,FinniganJ,MandersonL,WalkerB(eds)Negotiatingourfuture:living scenariosforAustraliato2050.AustralianAcademyofScience,Canberra,pp1–53 ReeceR(1989)Palmerston:fourexpeditionsinsearchofacapital.TheoriginsofAustralia’s capitalcities.CambridgeUniversityPress,Cambridge RegionalAustraliaInstitute(2013)RethinkingthefutureofnorthernAustralia’sregions:more thanmines,damsanddevelopmentdreams.RegionalAustraliaInstitute,Canberra RobbA(2014)TheAustralianGovernment’slong-termvisionfordevelopingAustralia’snorth. In:RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(eds)Northerndevelopment:creatingthefuture Australia.ADCForum,Melbourne RomerP(2014)OpportunitiesforpopulationgrowthtodrivedevelopmentofAustralia’snorth.In: RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(eds)Northerndevelopment:creatingthefutureAustralia. ADCForum,Melbourne RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(2014)Northerndevelopment:creatingthefutureAustralia. ADCForum,Melbourne RushmanG(1976)TowardsnewcitiesinAustralia.TownPlanRev47(1):4 SaltB(2011)Thebigtilt.HardieGrantBooks,Melbourne SchechS(2014)Silentbargainorruralcosmopolitanism?Refugeesettlementinregional Australia.JEthnMigrStud40(4):601–618

References 89 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

SheppardE(2013)ThinkingthroughthePilbara.AustGeogr44(3):265–282 SmythJ(2014)MiningslowdownthreatensvisionforAustraliancities.FinancialTimes. http:// search.proquest.com/docview/1563782748?accountid=14681.Accessed21Oct2016

StoreyK(2001)Fly-in/fly-outand fly-over:miningandregionaldevelopmentinWestern Australia.AustGeogr32(2):133–148

TanterR(2012)Backtothebases.ArenaMag117:26

TaylorJ,LeaJP(1988)Darwin.Cities5(3):226–233

TerzonE(2016)DevelopingDarwin.ABCNews. http://www.abc.net.au/news/2016-08-25/howwill-next-nt-government-develop-darwin/7749102 .Accessed18Jan2018

Troppoarchitects,TaylorCullityLethlean(2011)Weddell’s firstneighbourhoods:urbandesign concept.Darwin

TyrellL,MellorP,MonypennyR(2010)Townsville:aregionaldevelopmentcasestudy.AustJ RegStud16(2):203

UniversityofSouthernQueensland(2017)DrBenjamenGussen.UniversityofSouthern Queensland. http://staffprofile.usq.edu.au/Profile/Benjamen-Gussen.Accessed18Dec2017

Urbanalyst(2011)NTGovernmentannouncesWeddellDesignCompetitionwinners.Urbanalyst. http://www.urbanalyst.com/in-the-news/northern-territory/893-nt-government-announcesweddell-design-competition-winners.html .Accessed01Aug2017

WattA(2016)InterviewwithAndrewWatt,SeniorAssociateCreatingCommunities. Unpublished

WeirF(1974)Decentralisation:aworkablesolution.Unpublished, WilkesJ(1954)NorthernAustralia:taskforanation.Angus&Robertson,Sydney WilliamsR(2011)Thedarksideoftheboom.JohnFairfaxHoldings. https://global.factiva.com/ hp/printsavews.aspx?pp=Save&hc=Publication .Accessed20Oct2016

WuJ,WinchesterHP(2015)Globalisationandborderdynamics:Impactsontheurban developmentofDarwin,Australia.AustGeogr46(2):255–270

904NewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Chapter5 BarrierstoNewNorthernCities

Abstract Thischapterevaluatesthepotentialbarriersthatcouldderailthedelivery oftheneworboostedcityproposalsfornorthernAustralia,discussedinthepreviouschapter.Thesebarriersare,tovaryingdegrees,environmental,economic, societal,andgovernance-relatedandincludecarryingcapacityissues,thecostof enablinginfrastructure,andthequestionofhowtostimulategrowthinanewcity. Manyofthesebarrierswillbefamiliartoreaderswhoareacquaintedwithfailed attemptsatdecentralizationfromthetwentiethcentury.However,insomecases, thesebarriershavetransmutedintodifferentforms,withbothchangingtechnology andclimate.Regardless,ananalysisofthesebarriersrevealssomeformidable obstaclestoneworboostedcitydevelopmentsinthenorth,ofwhichproponents shouldbeaware.

Keywords Newcities Boostedcities Towns Carryingcapacity Wet-bulbtemperature Citylivability Climatechange Governance NorthernAustralia

5.1GeneralBarrierstoDevelopingNewCities intheNorth

Theproponentsofthevariousneworboostedcityproposalsmakeagenerally compellingcasefortheirrespectivecities.While 4 indulgedtheseproponentsand theirproposals,inthischapterIwillsettoworktotrytoidentifythepotential barriersthatcouldderailthedeliveryoftheircities.Ihavenotdonethisoutofspite butrathertohelptoevolvetheseschemes.Indeed,Iconsiderthemallworthyata baselevel;otherwise,theywouldnothavebeenincludedinthebook.Ofcourse,in theprocessofcriticalappraisal,Iamlikelytooverlooksomeemergingbarriers. ThisisaprocessundertakenwiththebestknowledgeIcouldassemble;however, nothingcanaccountfordisruptiveeventsinthefutureoverwhichIhaveno foresight.

© TheAuthor(s)2018

J.Bolleter, TheGhostCitiesofAustralia,SpringerBriefsinGeography, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-319-89896-4_5

91 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Nonetheless,givenwhatweknow,hamperingtheirimplementationislikelyto beavarietyofbarriersthatareenvironmental,economic,societal,or governance-related,whichIwilldealwithindependentlythroughoutthischapter. Whilethereissomeoverlapbetweenthesevariouscategories,thiscategorization willenableaclearerdiscussion.

5.2EnvironmentalBarriers

AsreadersofChap. 2,inparticular,willbeaware,Australia’senvironmenthas beenafundamentaldeterminantofpatternsofurbanizationinAustraliainthe twentiethcentury.Thereisreasontobelievethattheenvironmentmayplayaneven greaterpartindeterminingnorthernAustralia’stwenty- firstcenturysettlement patterns,despiteoursupposedtechnologicalprowess.

5.2.1CarryingCapacityLimitations

SheridenMorris,chairoftheCooperativeResearchCentreforDeveloping NorthernAustralia,believes “thefutureofnorthernAustraliaiswhateverweare preparedtomakeit” (SheridenMorrisinOfficeofNorthernAustralia 2017). Ithink,however,thereisreasontobelievethatinthiscenturythenorth’slimited humancarryingcapacityandchangingclimatewillmeanwewillstruggletoalign northernAustraliawithourownurbanvisions.

OneofthekeybarrierstotheneworboostednortherncitiestabledinChap. 4 relatestothecarryingcapacityofthelanditself.Theconceptofcarryingcapacity refersto “themaximumnumberofpersonsthatcanbesupportedinperpetuityon anarea” (FearnsideinLane 2017).Thisassessmentisoftenmadewithrespectto parametersincludingavailablefood,energy, fiber,andenvironmentalprotection mechanismsinconjunctionwithenergyandfoodconsumption(Lane 2017).While insomerespects,globalsupplychainshavemeantthatestimationsofcarrying capacity,basedonarbitrarylandboundaries,arehypotheticalonly(Lane 2017), suchestimationsnonethelessgiveusaguidetothedegreetowhicharegioncan sustainitshumanpopulation,ifneeded.

Evidenceforaclaimthataneworboostedcityinthenorth,suchasGalt’sGulch Litewithitspopulationofmillionsofpeople(Romer 2014),willdramatically outstripthecarryingcapacityoftheland,isprovidedbyrecentresearch(Lane 2017).MurrayLane’s 1 researchrevealsthateventherelativelymeagerpopulations oftheNorthernTerritoryandthenorthofWesternAustralia(wherethemajorityof theneworboostedcitiesarelocated)havealreadysigni ficantlyexceededthe

1Dr.MurrayLaneisaresearcherfromtheQueenslandUniversityofTechnology.

925BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.5.1 Carryingcapacity:ThismapshowsAustralia’s2011populationasapercentageofthe estimatedlong-termcarryingcapacity.MostareasofnorthernAustraliahavealreadyoutstripped theregion’scarryingcapacity. Source MapbyMurrayLanetracedbytheauthor

landscape’scarryingcapacity.Infact,theonlyareaofnorthernAustraliathathas notoutstrippeditscarryingcapacityisthe “NorthernGulf” regioneastofCairns (Lane 2017).WhilesouthernAustraliaalsohasissuesinthisrespect,particularly alongtheeasternseaboard,theseissuespaleincomparisontothoseinnorthern Australia(Fig. 5.1).

Ofcourse,technologicaloptimistsassumethatanybiophysicallimitswe encountertopopulationandeconomicgrowthcanbeovercome(Logg-Scarvell etal. 2015),andindeedcitiesexceedtheircarryingcapacityallthetime.Inthis regard,miffedproponentsofneworboostednortherncitiesmightrefertothe relativesuccessofDarwin,whichhasremainedviabledespitethecarryingcapacity oftheregion.However,theresultofDarwin(inparticular)exceedingitscarrying capacityisthatithasAustralia ’shighestecologicalfootprint(7.1ha)comparedto southerncitiessuchasMelbourne(6.4ha)orHobart(5.7ha)(TurnerandForan 2008).Ofcourse,ahighecologicalfootprintwillnot,inisolation,killoffanewor boostedcityproposal;however,itislikelytobeanincreasinglypowerfulfactoras wemoveintoanincreasinglyresource-constrainedtwenty-firstcentury.

Itdifficulttoassesswhichtablednewcitywouldbebestadaptedtocarrying capacitylimitations,giventhenebulousstateofanumberoftheproposals.That said,acitythatproposestogrowtopossiblymillionsofpeople,suchasGalt’s GulchLite(Romer 2014),obviouslywill(ifallelseisequal)exacerbatetheissue morethanamodest-sizedcitylikeKarratha.Theabilityofacitytogenerateitsown

5.2EnvironmentalBarriers93 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

renewableenergy,freshwater,andfoodsupplywillalsobecriticalinsuccessfully subvertingcarryingcapacityissues.AbuDhabi’sattemptatbuildingtheworld’s firstcitythatiscarbonneutralandpoweredentirelybyalternativeenergysources, however,isacautionarytale.Theprojectisestimatedtobecosting$27billionfor just50,000potentialinhabitants(Maasetal. 2011).

5.2.2CarryingCapacityandClimateChange

StronglyinfluencingthecarryingcapacityofnorthernAustraliaistheclimate.The north,currently,experiencesadramaticwet–dryseasonality(Dale 2014),andinthe wetseasondestructivecyclonesarecommon,andfrequent floodsinundatelarge areas(Nixetal. 2013)(Fig. 5.2).Mostclimatechangemodelsfornorthern Australiaprojectthattherewillbeanincreaseintheproportionoftropicalcyclones thatareinthemoreintensecategoriesbutapossibledecreaseinthetotalnumberof cyclones(Hugo 2012).Speci fically,thenumberofcategory3–5cyclonesare forecasttoincrease,andby2070therecouldbeanaccompanying140%increasein intensityofthemostseverestorms(DCCEEinHugo 2012).Thisisworrying becausemodelinghasshownthatthereisadisproportionateincreaseinlossoflife anddamagewithanincreaseinseverityofcyclones(McMichaelinHugo 2012) somethingthatcouldcurtailtheattractivenessandviabilityofneworboosted northerncities.Indeed,aninabilitytoobtaininsuranceinpotentiallyhigh-risk zonescouldbeoneparticularfactorthatcurtailspopulationgrowth.

CurrentclimateprojectionsfornorthernAustraliaalsoshowthatintheperiodto 2070northernAustraliaislikelytoreceivelessrainfall(exceptincoastalregions) andgetincreasinglyhotter,withapotential4–5°Csummertemperatureincrease (AustralianGovernment 2017a).Indeed,thereisprojectedtobeasignificant increaseinthenumberofextremelyhotdaysandnights(Hugo 2012).Inahigh emissionsscenario(A1F1),Darwinin2070willmostlikelyexperience308days peryearabove35°C(currentlyithas11),Broomewillhave281(currently54), andCairns96(currently3.8)(Hugo 2012).Whilethesoutherncapitalswillalso experienceextremelyhotdays,thiswillbetoamuchlesserdegree.Forinstance, Perthwillexperience67daysperyearabove35°C(currentlyitreceives28)(Hugo 2012).Thisisimportantbecausethe “pleasantness” ofaclimate(orotherwise)has proventobeamajordriverofpopulationgrowth(DurantonandPuga 2013).As such,consistentlyhottemperaturescouldeffectivelyconstrainneworboostedcity growthinthenorth.Moreover,theAustralianGovernmentprojectsthatinan unmitigatedclimatechangescenarioin2100,thenumberoftemperature-related deathsintheNorthernTerritorycouldincreasenearlysevenfold(Australian Government:DepartmentoftheEnvironmentandEnergy 2018).

OfparticularimportanceforneworboostedcitiesinnorthernAustraliaarethe interactionsbetweenhighheatandhumidity,knownas “wet-bulb” temperature.2

2Athermometercoveredwithawetwashclothisusedtomeasurewet-bulbtemperature.

945BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

5.2EnvironmentalBarriers95

Fig.5.2 Cyclones:ThismapshowscurrentannualcycloneincidenceinnorthernAustralia,a patternthatisprojectedtoincreaseinintensitywithclimatechange.DatabytheCommonwealth ScientificandIndustrialResearchOrganisation(2017). Source Mapbytheauthor

Putsimply,whenthewet-bulbtemperaturereaches35°C,thehumanbodycannot coolitselfbysweating,andeven fitpeoplesittingintheshadewilldiewithinsix hours(SherwoodandHuber 2010).Whileitisoftenassumedthathumanswouldbe abletoadapttoanypossiblewarming,aglobalmeanwarmingof7°Cwouldcall thehabitabilityofsomeregionsintoquestion(SherwoodandHuber 2010).This situationcouldalsoaffecttheNorthernTerritory,inparticular,wherewet-bulb temperatureexceeds30°Cforalmosttheentireyearandisalreadyanissuefroma livabilityandeconomicperspective(Hyndman 2015).3 Humidityinsuchregions remainshigh,evenwithclimatechange,4 andintimethecombinationofhigh humidityandextremetemperature,whichdefinesthewet-bulbtemperature,could belethal.

Inprinciple,theneworboostedcitiestabledcouldincorporateprotectionagainst suchconditionsthroughmuchwideradoptionofairconditioning,higherdensity urbanismthatallowssomeprotectionfroma fierceclimate,andaminimumof vegetationtoreduceevapotranspiration.However,thiswouldnotprotectoutside

3Inaddition,thisissuecouldhavesignificantimplicationsforthenorthernpastoralindustryand biodiversitymoregenerally.

4NorthernAustraliaisprojectedonlytobeslightlylesshumid,withaminordecreaseinrelative humidityalongthecoastof0.5–1%(AustralianGovernment 2017a).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

workers;itwouldperiodicallyimprisonpeopleintheirhomes,andpowerfailures wouldbecomelethal(SherwoodandHuber 2010):asituationthatwouldcurtail thesecities’ livabilityandindeedtheirviability.Shortofurbandesignadaption strategies,ideallyneworboostedcitieswouldbelocatedinlandandasfarsouthas possibletoescapehighhumidity.NewcitiessuchasRefugeCity,whichislocated neartheoceanandatAustralia ’snorthernextremity,infact,couldbecomeasource ofclimatechangerefugees,notarefuge.

5.3EconomicBarriers

Thehistoryoffailedattemptsatdecentralizationintheearlytomid-twentieth centuryclearlyshowsthatwithoutaconvincingeconomicdriver(orideallydrivers) neworboostedcitieswill fizzle,regardlessofhowcompellingtheirnarrativeor spatialstructuremaybe.

5.3.1TheExpenseofProvidingInfrastructure

Newcities(and,toalesserdegree,boostedcities)inthenorthfacesignificant economicbarrierssuchasthecostofconstructingtheenablinginfrastructurethat wouldbenecessarytomakethemviable.Inparticular,adeep-waterportis somethingthattheneworboostedcityproposalsprofiledwouldneedtoduplicate todeliverthequantitiesofmaterialsrequiredtoconstructsuchcitiesaswellasto generaterevenuethroughtrade.5,6

Theinvestmentrequiredtoduplicateenablingport,rail,andairportinfrastructurefornewcities,inparticular,wouldbevast.SuchinvestmentswouldbesubsequentlyverydifficulttojustifytoeitherinvestorsorTreasuryofficials.Thisis becauseexistingcitiesinthenorth,suchasDarwinandTownsville,havehistoricallybeensitesofmassiveinfrastructureinvestmentyethavenotreachedtheir populationanddevelopmentpotential.

NewcityproponentssuchasKaeseshagen,Salt,andRomerallproposeenabling infrastructureintheformofinternationalairportsasawayofdrawingininternationaltourists,residents,andinvestment;however,thisisnotnearlyassimpleas drawingadotonaplan.LordMcAlpine’splanstobuildaninternationalairportat Broome(seeChap. 4)provideacautionarytaleinthisrespect.McAlpine’smaster plantodevelopBroomelargelydependedonagovernmentagreementtobuildan

5WiththeexceptionofWeddell,whichhassomeaccesstoDarwin’sport,andKarratha,which accesstoadeep-waterportatPortHedland.

6AllAustraliancapitalcities,withtheexceptionofCanberra,havecoalescedaroundports(Blainey 2010),whichhaveallowedtheimportationofmaterialsandshippingofexportstodomesticand internationalmarkets.

965BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

5.3EconomicBarriers97

internationalairport.HethoughtthisairportwoulddofornorthwesternAustralia whatnewairportsatCairnsandAliceSpringshaddoneforthenortheastandcenter, whereGermanandJapanesetouristshadsubsequently “pouredin” (Davie 2000). Thestateandfederalgovernments,however,thousandsofkilometersawayinPerth andstillfurtherawayfromCanberra balked.WhileBroomeeventuallygainedan internationalairport,ithasnotyieldedthebenefitsthatMcAlpineprojected.Even thoughAustraliacurrentlyreceivesaround7,000,000airpassengersayear,thevast majority flytothemajorcapitalcities,notsmallerregionaltownssuchasBroome (AustralianGovernment 2015).Whileitisonethingforanairporttohave “international” status,itisanotherforittofunctionasoneonaregularbasis as exemplifiedbyBroome’sinternationalairport.

Finally,theDarwinsatellitecityofPalmerston(Weddell’s1980spredecessor; seeChap. 4),revealstheeconomicchallengestoprovidingenablinginfrastructure toregionalneworboostedcities.WhilePalmerstonisamere23kmfromDarwin andhasexistedsincethe1980s,thereremainspoorpublictransportbetweenthe cities,resultingina40-minbusjourneyforthosewhocannotaffordtodrive(Lobo 2014).ThisisarelativelylongcommuteforDarwin,acitywherepeoplearriveat mostdestinationswithin20minwhentravelingbycar(Lobo 2014).Duetoalack ofeffectivepublictransportinfrastructurebetweenthecenters(suchasheavyrail), researchhasfoundthattheinitialoccupantsofPalmerston(upuntil1996)tendedto havelowerincomesandeducationachievements,beindigenousorbelivingwitha disabilityorinasingle-parentfamily,thanresidentsofDarwinCity(Carson 2010). Suchasituationremindsusofthecostofservicingnewregionalcitieswiththe requiredinfrastructuretoconnectthemtothejobsandopportunitiesofthecapital cities.

OfthecitiestabledinChap. 4,theboostedcitiestendtoratebetterthancompletelynewcitiesinrelationtotheinfrastructureinvestmentrequired.Thisis becausetheytendtohave(atleast)someaccesstoexistingenablinginfrastructure, intheformofports,raillines,andairports.

5.3.2ALackofCompellingEconomicDrivers(andJobs)

Compoundingthecosttoinfrastructureprovisiontoneworboostedcitiesisthe vagueeconomicdriversforstimulatingthegrowthoftheneworboostedcities.For instance,Romer(2014)proposesthatchartercityurbanizationinnorthernAustralia “couldveryeasilygohandinhandwithsustainablehigh-technologyagricultural development” (2014).Whilethismaybeaviableeconomicproposition,itisnot clearthatsuchagriculturaldevelopmentwillrequireasignificantworkforcehoused inanadjacentcity.AsPaulDaleyexplains,inthecomparativelynearfuture agriculturewillmostlikelybelefttotherobots “thatcanplant,fertilize,spray, weed,monitorandultimatelyharvest,packandtransportcrops” (2016).Reflecting theincreasingmechanizationoffarming,theproportionofworkersemployedin

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Australianagriculturefellfrom30.2%in1911to4.3%in1996,translating,in humanterms,toanaverageof294farmersleavingtheirpropertieseachmonth (Daley 2016).

The “miningboom,” whichledtothePilbaraCities’ initiativeandtheattemptto boostKarrathatocitystatus,hassomesimilarities.Theconstructionofnewmines andliquidnaturalgas(LNG)projects,whichrequiredasubstantialworkforce, droveKarratha’sdevelopment.However,nowthattheseconstructedprojectsare operatingasintended,therequiredworkforceissubstantiallysmallerthanduring theconstructionperiod asituationthatinpartexplainsKarratha’sdropinpopulationinrecentyears.

WhilethedevelopmentofKarrathahasbeenhamperedbysuchtransitionsand compoundedby fluctuationsintheresourcesindustry(RegionalAustraliaInstitute 2013),otherdisruptivetrendsarealsolikelytoincreasinglycurtailtheneedfor mining-relatedcitybuildinginthefuture.RoboticsexpertHughDurrant-Whyte7 recentlyconcluded: “Inthenextdecade,mostmineswilloperatewithlessthana thirdofcurrentworkforces,withasignificantnumberoftheseengagingremotely” (Daley 2016).

RioTinto’sautomationofmineralproductioninitsgiantPilbarairon-ore operationsprovidesoneexamplethatconfirmsDurrant-Whyte’sprediction.Rio Tintoalsocentralizedthemanagementofindividualproductioncomponentsto Perthin2010,approximately1500kmtothesouth.AsRioTintomanaging directorMichaelGollschewskiexplains: “Theoperationscenterproducesbetter, smarter,fasterdecisionsateverylevelmonitoringandcontrollingthemining,rail andportactivitiesremotelyfromasinglelocation” (Daley 2016).If Durrant-Whyte’spredictionregardingtheautomation(andcentralization)ofmining operationsisborneoutinreality,thiswillcertainlycallintoquestiontheneedfor neworboostedcitiestohousepopulationstoserviceminingoperations.

WhilethecurrentdominantindustriesinnorthernAustraliaaregenerallybased aroundaccesstonaturalresources mining,agricultureandtourism(Regional AustraliaInstitute 2013) thenorthholdsmuchpotentialwithrespectto knowledge-intensiveindustries.Inthisrespect,Daleetal.(2014)projectsthat,in conjunctionwithagrowingknowledge-basedeconomyinthenorth,jobsinprofessionalandtechnicalserviceswillmostlikelyexceedthoseintheresourcesand agriculturesectorsoverthelongerterm.Anumberofthenewcityproponentscite theknowledgeeconomyasapotentialeconomicdriver.BenjamenGussenexplains theeconomicdriversforDilga(seeChap. 4)couldcomefromexporting “added value finishedproducts” andservices,bothbasedonknowledge-intensivehubs suchasSiliconValley’sinformationtechnologyclusters(Gussen 2017a).The problemfornewcityproponents,however,isthatthehighlymobileandsavvy workersengagedintheknowledgeeconomyaretypicallyattractedtothelifestyle thatahostcitycanoffer(Florida 2002),somethingthatDilga,locatedinthewilds oftheKimberley,couldstruggletoprovide particularlyintheearlyyearsof

7HughDurrant-WhyteleadsaUniversityofSydneyresearchteamonrobotics.

985BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

development.Anyway,suchknowledgejobswouldbesurelybetterlocatedin Darwin,wherethereareexistingtertiaryeducationandresearchinstitutionssuchas CharlesDarwinUniversityandFlindersUniversity(Daleetal. 2014).

TheexampleoftheAustralianNorthernEcoCity(ANEC)(seeChap. 4)also providesfurtherillustrationofthesechallenges.DesignersEcoscapeproposesthat ANECbethehomeofmanyofthenorth’sadministrativefunctionsthatarecurrentlyfoundintheadministrativecityofDarwin acenterthattendstofunctionas theunofficialcapitalofthenorth,aswellasbeinggenerallylivableand well-serviced(Carsonetal. 2010).WhileANECmayoffertheliberatingpotential to “startagain” andreimaginewhatacitycouldbe,thisspeculativeexerciseis unlikelytoconvincetheNorthernTerritoryorAustralianGovernmenttofundan expensiveoperationtodispersegovernancefunctionsandjobstotheisolatedLake Argyleregion.FormerSouthAustralianpremierDonDunstan’sfailedattemptto exilelargesectionsofthestatepublicservicetoMonartointhemid-1970sprovides acautionarytaleinthisrespect(Wanna 1982). “Hellno,wedonotwanttogo” was thechorusthen,andcouldbeagainiftheNorthernTerritoryandWestern AustraliangovernmentsactuallygotseriousaboutANEC.

Finally,evenWeddellwillbedifficulttoservicewithjobs astheexampleof Palmerstonexemplifies.Thisisdespitethefactthatitisonly40kmfromDarwin, not400km!Whilealackofcompellingeconomicdrivers(andjobs)willkilloffa newregionalcityinthecaseofthesatellitecityofWeddell,alackofjobscould meanitsimplymorphsintoyetanotherdormitorysuburbratherthanthe “world-classgreencity” itistoutedtobecome(BolleterandWeller 2013).

5.3.3SpecialEconomicZonesandtheConstitution

Oneoftheprincipalbarrierstotheproposedchartercities,andtheirrespective specialeconomiczones(SEZ)istheconstitutionalbarrierstheypose.Despitethe lobbyingofgroupssuchasAustraliansforNorthernDevelopmentandEconomic Vision,therecentAustralianGovernmentwhitepaper “OurNorth,OurFuture” doesnotenvisageutilizingSEZstodevelopnorthernAustralia.Beneaththe heading “WhytheGovernmentisnotdeclaringthenorthaSpecialEconomic Zone”,thewhitepaperstatesthat “inAustralia,theConstitutionprohibits Commonwealthtaxationthatdiscriminatesbetweenstatesorpartsofstates,aswell asCommonwealthlawsorregulationoftrade,commerceorrevenuethatgives preferencetoonestateorpartofastateoveranother” (FitzpatrickandJian 2016).

In2013,boththeAustralianLaborPartyandtheLiberal –NationalCoalition promisedthat,ifelected,theywouldbuildanSEZ,ormultipleSEZs,inthenorthof Australia(FitzpatrickandJian 2016),sopresumingtheyarenotjustignorantofthe constitution,thissituationcouldchange.However,theconstitutionalframeworkas itstandsprovidesasignificantbarriertocreatingtheSEZsthatcouldunderpinthe plannedchartercities.Ifprivateinvestorsactuallymanagedtogetachartercityoff theground,andparliamentsubsequentlydeemedthatitsSEZwasunconstitutional,

5.3EconomicBarriers99 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

1005BarrierstoNewNorthernCities

assoonastheeconomicbenefitsitofferedweakened,anychartercitypopulation wouldnaturallydriftbacktoAustralia’sexistingmajorcities,oroverseas.

Otherattemptstodeliverchartercitiesremindusthattheseconstitutionalbarriersareserious.Hondurashasbeenattemptingtobuildachartercitysince2009; however,in2012theHonduranSupremeCourtruled “privatecities” unconstitutional,andtheproposalhasstalled(Unknownauthor 2012).

TheconstitutionalrisksofSEZsaside,itisworthnotingthatinthemid-1980s, theNorthernTerritoryGovernmentestablishedamanufacturingTrade DevelopmentZone(TDZ),Australia ’sonlyfreetradezone,inDarwin,toutilize opportunitiesofincreasedtradewithAsia.TheNorthernTerritoryGovernment investedmorethan$26,000,000incapitalworkintheTDZ,hopingtoreducethe city’seconomicdependenceonthepresenceofthemilitaryandexpandDarwininto “acityof2,750,000people” by2010(WuandWinchester 2015) itscurrent populationbeingjustover100,000!However,by1990,therewereonly five companiesemploying68peopleoperatingintheTDZ.Itcollapsedin2003, demonstrating “thewidthofthegapbetweenwhatithaspromisedandwhatithas delivered” (WuandWinchester 2015).

5.4SocietalBarriers

Manyofthechampionsofnewandboostedcityproponentsfeaturedintheprevious chaptersarecavalierintheirtendencytothrowout(possibly)inflatedprojectionsof hundredsofthousands,ifnotmillions,ofpeople(Romer 2014)occupyingtheir grandvisions.However,whatismissedinthisdiscussionofdisembodiedconcepts likepopulationandmigrationisthatwearetalkingaboutreallives—“aboutpeople andtheirneeds,wants,capabilitiesandfears” (Mares 2010) ratherthana monolithic,subservientblockofpeoplewhowillsuccumbtoavisionary’sgrand plans.

5.4.1TheLivabilityofNewNorthernCities

Thecavalierattitudestomigrationdisplayedbysomeofthenewcityproponents maskthefactthattheirneworboostedcitieswillneedtodeliverhighlevelsof livability arguablycommensuratewiththenorth’sexistingmajorcitiesofDarwin, Cairns,Townsville,andMackay tohaveanychanceofdrawinginpeople.This wouldbenomeanfeatbecauseCairnsandTownsvillearerenownedlifestylecities thatofferaccesstotheGreatBarrierReefandtheWetTropicsrainforest(Bohnet andPert 2010).Moreover,inrecentyearsDarwinhasemergedasavibrant, youthfulandmulticulturaltropicalcity evidenceforwhichisDarwin’slistingby the “LonelyPlanet” in2012asoneof10 “mustsee” places(InBolleterandWeller 2013).

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Attractionswouldneedtobegenerouslydispensedtowardofftheperceptionby city-dwellersthatregionaltownsare “dullandlackinginamenities” (Lonsdale 1972).Inessence,thenewcityneedstobepumpprimedsoastolimittheperiodof “newtownblues,” whereitisfelt “thereisnowheretogoandnothingtodo” (Berkley 1973).Educationalopportunitiesareaparticularlyimportantcomponent inengagingcitizensintheearlyyearsandoverthelongerterm.Thetransitionof childrenfromprimarytohighschoolistraditionallyacatalystformanyfamiliesto returntoAustralia’scapitalcities.

Again,theexperienceofPalmerstonisinstructive,withthesatellite “city” of Darwinstilltryingtoshakeoffitsimageasa “dormitoryoutersuburbforDarwin” despiteitbeingnowapproximately40yearsold(Carson 2010).Thisreflectsthe factthatPalmerstonhasexperiencedsignifi cantlagsbetweenpopulationgrowth andthedeliveryofamenitiesthatunderpinlivability(Carson 2010).

AccesstothecoastisacrucialdimensionoflivabilityformanyAustralians.The exampleoftherapidlygrowing,noncapitalcoastalcitiessuchasCairns,theGold Coast,theSunshineCoastandGladstoneinQueensland,andBunburyand MandurahinWesternAustraliaindicatethatsomeofthepsychologicalhurdlesto movingtoaregionalcityinnorthernAustralia,orelsewhere,canbepartlycompensatedforbyaccesstothecoast(Salt 2011).AsGinaRineharturges:

Somemaysay, ‘oh,it’stoohotinthenorth,reducedtaxation,andevenreducedregulation, won’thelp.Peopleonlywanttoliveinthesouthern,coastalcities.Dealingwiththecoast first;therearethousandsofmilesofcoastlineinournorththatcouldbepopulated(Rinehart 2012).

Despitesuchproclamations,itisimportant,however,tobearinmindthat northernAustralia ’scoastlineisnotthegenerallymild-manneredcoastofthe southernstates.Inthewetseason,thenorthexperiencesdestructivecyclonesin coastalareas,andfrequent floodsinundatelargeareas(Nixetal. 2013).AsDale (2014)explains, “theheatandhumiditysapsyourstrength”;however, “forget goingtothebeach,asmarinestingerscouldbewaftingpast.” Perhapsduetosuch issues,oftheneworboostedcitiesdiscussedinthischapter,onlyBroomereally seekstoleverageitscoastalenvironment.Arguably,theproposedinlandlocationof manyoftheproposedneworboostedcitieswillseethemstruggletobeattractive fromalivabilityperspectivewhencomparedtoboththeexistingsouthernand northeasterncoastalcities.

However,extremesealevelrisecoulddramaticallyaffectthissituation,particularlyfortownsandcitiessuchasBroomeandtheGoldCoast,inwhichthebeach istheir “sinequanon”—theiressential,definingcharacteristic(Cooperand Lemckert 2012).Thelossofbeachestosealevelriseandaccompanyingerosion couldhavemassiveenvironmentalandeconomicimplications,asthesebeaches formthetourismdrawcardsforsuchcenters.

Inthisscenario,themanufacturedandcontrolledcoastlineofANEConthevast LakeArgylecouldbecomeincreasinglyattractive;however,thetouristdrawof LakeArgyleasacoastalsubstituteishardtogauge.WhileLakeArgyleisvastand impressivewhenviewedfromtheair,atgroundlevelithasthestrangemelancholy,

5.4SocietalBarriers101 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

whicharti ficialwaterbodiesseemtoemanate.Assuch,itisunclearwhetherthis managedcoastlinewouldbeattractiveenoughtoenticetourists,particularlyifthe presenceofsaltwatercrocodilesendures.

Accesstospace,typicallyprivatesuburbangardens,isalsoacrucialaspectof livabilityinAustralia.Anumberoftheneworboostedcitiesproposed,particularly ANEC,DilgaandevenKarratha,plantoyieldurbandensitythatfarexceedsthatof thesuburbanspreadofAustralia ’scapitalcities.Thisdensity,rightlyorwrongly, couldactasadisincentivetodecentralizationofpopulationfromthecapitals.This isbecauseAustraliansoftenregardaccesstoprivatespaceasatrade-offfor outer-suburbanorregionalliving.Canberraprovidesacautionarytaleinthis respect.TheGriffins’ plansforCanberraspeci fiedChicagodensityurbanismbutin time,thiscollapsedintolow-densitysuburbanformstypicalofAustralia ’scapitals.

5.4.2ALackofSupportforForeignInvestment andImmigration

Anumberofthenewcityvisionaries(suchasGussen)proposeamajorcomponent offoreigninvestmentandimmigrationtobuildandpopulatetheircities;however, thisislikelytoexperiencestiffresistancefromAustralianvoters.Acomparatively recentpollconductedbytheLowyInstituterevealedthat46%ofAustraliansthink thefederalgovernmentisallowingtoomuchforeigninvestment,a figurethatjumps to56%whenaskedspecificallyaboutinvestmentfromChina(Hartcher 2012).

TheMultifunctionPolisproposalprovidesawarninginthisrespect.First unveiledin1987,theMultifunctionPoliswastoinvolvetheconstructionofa futuristicmultifunctionalcityofabout10,000peopleasaprototypeforcitiesofthe twenty- firstcenturyontheedgeofAdelaide(Hamnett 1997).Ajointventure betweentheJapaneseandAustraliangovernments,MultifunctionPolisbecame knownasthe “Japcity,” aracialslurfromwhichitwouldneverrecover(Bolleter andWeller 2013).

ThecasethatcanbemadeforAsianinvestmentandimmigrationtonewor boostedcitiesinthenorthisthatnorthernAustraliahasalwaysbeencloselylinked withAsia,particularlyintermsoftrade(Ganter 2005).Darwinisastrongexample ofthecontributionsAsiannationshavemadetonorthernAustralia.Between1878 and1909,theChinesepopulationofDarwinoutstrippedthatoftheEuropeans “bya ratioofmorethanfourtoone”—aperiodinwhichChineseimmigrantsmade particularlysignificantcontributionstoDarwin’scivic,cultural,andculinarylife (Luckman 2011).

Regardless,newcities,especiallychartercities,predicatedonAsianandin particularChineseinvestment,arelikelytobeperceivedbysomeasathreatto Australia’snationalself-determination particularlygivenChina’sdrivetogain politicaland,insomecases,territorialadvantageintheregion.WhileGussenhopes thatthe “habitofwelcomingimmigrantsandworkingacrosscultures,soembedded

1025BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

inSingaporeans’ DNA,” istransplantedintohischartercity(Gussen 2017b),it remainstobeseenwhetherthisattitudewillspreadtothemajorityofvotersin southernAustralia.

AcautionarytaleinthisrespectwastheproposalofaJewishcolonyinthe Kimberleyin1939 aprecursorofthecontemporaryRefugeCityproposal. SpearheadedbytheFreelandLeagueforJewishTerritorialColonization,theJewish colonywastocommencewithaninitial75,000refugeesettlerswhowoulddevelop agricultureintheregion.Surprisingly,theWesternAustralianParliamentagreedto thescheme,onlyforittobestonewalledatthefederallevelin1944(Bolleterand Weller 2013).Thiswas,inpart,becauseaculturallyspecifi ccolonyinthenorth wascontrarytothegovernment ’spolicyofassimilatingnewimmigrantsand avoidingcongregationsofnationalities(Langfield 2001) aphilosophythat remainscurrentandcouldunderminesupportforthenewchartercitiesproposed.

5.4.3PotentialResistancefromExistingResidents

ProponentsofboostedcityproposalssuchasthoseforBroomeandKarrathacan alsoexperienceresistancefromexistingresidentswhomayliketheirtown “justthe wayitis.” McAlpine,inparticular,overlookedthelocalresistancetochangein formulatinghisproposalsforanexpandedandincreasinglyinternationalBroome (BolleterandWeller 2013).Asheexplainedinhis1999bookofrecollectionsand reflections, “FromBagmantoSwagman”:

Accustomedtolivinginatownwhereanyonewhohasafewbuckssetsaboutmultiplying them,usuallyattheexpenseofthecommunity,thesepeoplewerenaturallysuspiciousof myactivities.TryasImighttoexplainthatmymotivesweretomaketheplacethatIhad chosentoliveinbetter,ratherthanworse,itmadenodifference(McAlpine 1999).

Theendresultwasthat “afteryearsofcombat,” McAlpine’sopponents fi nally won,frustratinghiseffortstobuildaninternationalairport(McAlpine 1999). Broome’slocalresistancetochangeanddevelopmenthasrecentlybeenon displayinprotestsagainstbuildingtheBrowseLNGprojectatJamesPricePoint nearBroome.8 Theseprotests,inconjunctionwithcostpressures,contributedtothe decisionbyWoodsideEnergyLimitedtoshelveitsproposedprojectin2013 (AustraliansforNorthernDevelopmentandEconomicVision 2013).Similarly,if developersattempttorecastBroome’simagewithglimmeringtowersevokingthe GoldCoast,thiswillelicitsignificantresistancefromthelocalcommunityasthey seektoprotectwhattheyperceiveasbeingauthenticallyBroome,whichisgenerallywhatdrewtheresidentsthereinthe firstplace(JonesandTonts 2003).

8Theseprotestsarealsorelatedtotheissueofdevelopmentonindigenouslandandenvironmental issues.

5.4SocietalBarriers103 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

5.4.4PotentialResistancefromIndigenousLandholders

Themajorityoftheneworboostedcityproposalssurveyedinthepreviouschapter alsooverlooktheexistingconnectionto,andusageof,landbyindigenouspeoplein northernAustralia.WhileRomerproposesthatchartercitiesabidebythebasic principlethattheyarebuiltona “tractofuninhabitedlandsuitablefora multimillion-personscalecity” (Freiman 2013),suchaconceptualizationof “uninhabited” landinnorthernAustraliainevitablyignoresindigenousownershipand careofancestrallands,or “country,” asithastakenplaceovertensofthousandsof yearsago(Fredericks 2013).

Wherethenewcityvisionariesrefertoindigenousculture,itistypically super ficial.OneexampleofthisisEcoscape’s,nodoubtwell-intentioned,attempt toembedindigenousthemingwithintheurbansuperstructureofANEC (ArchitectureandDesign 2013) asymbolicgesturethatpalesincomparisontothe widespread “profoundsadness” amongmanyAboriginalpeopleconcerningthe sacredsitesdrownedbeneaththevastLakeArgyleuponwhichANECissited (ShawinHead 1999).

While “ignoringthosewhodissenttoterritorialtransfersisacommonproblem indiscussionsoflarge-scaleimmigrationprograms” (Lister 2014),suchatendency willbeincreasinglydifficulttoperpetuateinnorthernAustralia,particularlyasit relatestonewcitybuilding.Indigenouspeoplehaveatlasthadindigenousproperty rightsenshrinedinAustralianlawthrough “nativetitle,” creatingwhatcommentatorshavecalleda “landtitlingrevolution.” Thishasproducedarenewed indigenousestatecoveringmorethan30%oftheAustraliancontinent(Porter 2017) andasubstantial50%oftheNorthernTerritory(PearsonandGorman 2010)9

Newcityproponentshavepositedtheirrespectivecitieswithinthiscomplex culturallandscape,whichraisesissuesbothmoralandlegal.Whilelarge-scale urbanizationdealsarepossible,thegrantingofsupportfornewcitydevelopments byindigenouscustodiansoftheland(andothers)remainsuncertain.Suchsupport willhingeonrespectfulnegotiationsfromtheconceptualoutset,andonthedegree towhichtheneworboostedcitycanbeconsideredtobebenefi tingindigenous peoplewhocontinuetoexperience “chronicdisadvantage” (Raupachetal. 2012).

Itisworthnotingthattraditionalindigenousculturehastendedtosurviveand thriveinmanyregions,suchascentralAustralia,ArnhemLand,theKimberley, amongstothers,whichareisolatedfromAustralia’spopulouscities(Blainey 2010). Assuch,atruereconciliationofcitybuildingwithindigenouscustodianshipofthe landwillrequireacompletereconceptualizationofhowwehavebuiltAustralian citiestodate,whichishowitshouldbe.

9However,thisestatedoesnotconvey ‘ownership’ andgovernmentcancompulsorilyacquireland andassuchextinguishnativetitle(AustralianHumanRightsCommission 2016).

1045BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

5.5GovernanceBarriers

Alacunasharedbyalmostalloftheneworboostedcitiestabledinthelastchapter isacompellingyetrealisticplanforthegovernancestructures,whichcouldactually deliversuchcenters.Therelativeunwillingnessofsomeproponentstoexplore governanceissuesmayreflectthatitisadimensionofplanningthathasgreat potentialtoderailtheimplementationofnewcities.Thisisparticularlythecase whengovernanceisspatiallyfragmentedandshort-terminoutlook.

5.5.1FragmentedandShort-TermPlanning

Thecurrentcityandstateorterritoryplanningofthenorthdoesnotcountenancethe scaleofpopulationgrowthproposedintheneworboostedcityvisionsdiscussedin thepreviouschapter and,indeed,thegovernment’swhitepaper “OurNorth,Our Future.” TheplanforCairnsandthesurroundingFarNorthQueenslandregion scopestheperiodto2031andanadditionalpopulationintheCairnsregionofonly 100,000people(QueenslandGovernment 2009).Similarly,theplanningscheme forTownsvillehasascopethatextendsto2031andapopulationincreaseofonly 110,000people(TownsvilleCityCouncil 2017).Finally,the “StrategicPlanfor Darwin,” preparedbytheCityofDarwin,onlyscopesaperiodto2020anda comparativelyminorpopulationincreaseof22,000people(CityofDarwin 2012) despitebeingbilledasthe “long-termvisionforDarwin” (CityofDarwin 2012).As withAustraliagenerally,planningcontinuestobeorganizedonacity-by-cityand stateandterritorybasis(Freestone 2014),andassuchisspatiallyfragmented.

Arguably,apartnershipbetweenfederal,state/territory,andlocalgovernments todeviseandimplementabipartisannationalsettlementstrategyisrequiredto engagewiththecomplexityofdeliveringneworboostedcitiesinthenorth. BrendanGleesonentitlessuchaplan,an “AustraliaPlan” (2010),andBrian Haratsisproposesitcoulddelineatefutureurbangrowthareas(ornewcities), establishspatiallimitsforexistingcities,andbecoordinatedwithaninfrastructure plandirectingnationalandglobalinfrastructurespending(2010).

Thesettingofspatiallimits,possiblyintheformofstrictlypolicedurbangrowth boundariesfortheexistingcapitalcities,wouldbeofparticularimportance. Developingneworboostedcitiesinthenorth(ifnotpredicatedonproblematic levelsofimmigration)isfundamentallytiedtolimitingthegrowthofthedominant capitalcitiestogeneratea “pushfactor” totheregions(Freestoneetal. 2016). WithoutanAustraliaPlantomanagethissituation,thetwodistinctiveaspectsof existingAustralianurbanization capitalcitydominanceandsuburbansprawl dominatingthecapitals(Paris,1994,p.556) willcompoundovertime.

Thescaleofplanning,asembodiedbyanAustraliaPlan(orsimilar),wouldbe dependentonarenewedfederalgovernmentinvolvementinurbanmatters,reminiscentoftheDepartmentofUrbanandRegionalDevelopmentfromthe1970s

5.5GovernanceBarriers105 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Fig.5.3 Nativetitle:NativetitleclaimsanddeterminationsinnorthernAustralia.Datacourtesy oftheAustralianGovernment. Source Mapbytheauthor

(Oakley 2004)discussedinChap. 3.10 WhileanAustraliaPlanhasobviousvirtues, itissomethingthatwouldbeextremelydiffi culttoreconcilewiththecurrent politicalclimate.AsAustraliawrestleswithagrowingdebtchallengeandthe wickedproblemsofitsexistingcities,itisveryhardtoseethismoodshifting anytimesoon.

Furthermore,anAustraliaPlanwouldobviouslyrequirebipartisansupportatthe federalandstatelevelstobeeffective.AsthefederalCitiesCommissionwarnedin relationtothegrowthcenterprogramin1973, “afallingoffofsupport,especiallyin theearlyyearswhenapparentprogressislimited,couldunderminethewhole programme” (CitiesCommission 1973).Thiswarningisequallyvalidinrelationto afutureAustraliaPlan.

ThesatellitecityofWeddellprovidesanexampleofwhathappenswhen planningistiedtoshort-termelectoralcycleswithlittleornobipartisan(Fig. 5.3) agreementbetweenthemajorpoliticalparties.Weddellwasoriginallyproposedas analternativetothedevelopmentofrurallandinthetermoftheNorthernTerritory

10TheAustraliangovernmenthasrecentlyestablisheda ‘CityDeals’ policyinwhich ‘thethree levelsofgovernment,thecommunityandprivateenterprise’…‘worktoaligntheplanning, investmentandgovernancenecessarytoaccelerategrowthandjobcreation,stimulateurban renewalanddriveeconomicreforms’ (DepartmentofthePrimeMinisterandCabinet 2017).While amuch-neededinitiative,thispolicyiscity-speci ficandnotgearedtodeliveringregionaldevelopmentandcreatingnewcities.

1065BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

LaborGovernmentin2009.Subsequently,itwasdumpedbytheCountryLiberal Partyfollowingtheir2012electionsuccess.Finally,withLaborregainingpowerin 2016,they “committedtoreignitingtheproject” (Terzon 2016).Giventhatthe Weddellsatellitecityiscomparativelymanageableincost,size,andproximityto Darwin,thepoliticaldifficultiesofgettingitoffthegroundarerevealingofthe challengesmoresubstantialandremotenewcitiesinthenorthwouldencounter.

5.6Conclusion

Allofthenewandboostedcityvisionsdiscussed,tovaryingdegrees,wouldhave toovercomesubstantialbarriersforgroundtobebrokenonconstruction.Allofthe proposalswouldbecompetingdirectlywiththenorth’sdominantcities(letalone thoseinthesouth)forpopulation,andthereisgoodreasontobelievethatthey wouldstruggle.WhileAustralia ’sdominantcoastalcitiesremainlivableandwhere infrastructureexists,itwillbeverydifficulttodecantpopulationfromsuchcitiesto theregions,attractinternationalmigrants,orconvincegovernmentsoftheneedfor massivespendingtoduplicateenablinginfrastructurefornewcities.

Thiswillnotalwaysbethecase,however.Thenorth’spopulationisgrowing quickly(fromanadmittedlylowbase)andthesitesoftheexistingdominantcities ofCairns,Townsville,andDarwinareconstrainedbyenvironmentalfactorsthat willlimitsignificanturbanexpansion.Inthisrespect,arguably,thenewand boostedcityvisionsprofiledinthisbookaresimplyaheadoftheirtime.Howfar theyareaheadoftheirtime,however,ishardtoknow.Personally,Iwouldnothold yourbreath…

References

Architecture&Design(2013)WinnersofCAPIThetiCALcompetition. http://www. architectureanddesign.com.au/news/winners-of-capithetical-competition.Accessed1Aug2017

AustralianGovernment(2015)Ournorth,ourfuture:whitepaperondevelopingnorthern Australia.AustralianGovernment,Canberra

AustralianGovernment(2017a)ClimatechangeinAustralia.AustralianGovernment. http:// ccia2007.climatechangeinaustralia.gov.au .Accessed11.052017

AustralianGovernment(2017b)data.gov.au. https://data.gov.au/.Accessed15Dec2017

AustralianGovernment:DepartmentoftheEnvironmentandEnergy(2018)Climatechange impactsintheNorthernTerritory.AustralianGovernment. http://www.environment.gov.au/ climate-change/climate-science-data/climate-science/impacts/nt .Accessed4Dec2017

AustralianHumanRightsCommission(2016)IndigenousPropertyRights.AustralianHuman RightsCommission. https://www.humanrights.gov.au/our-work/aboriginal-and-torres-straitislander-social-justice/projects/indigenous-property-rights .Accessed18Dec2017

AustraliansforNorthernDevelopmentandEconomicVision(2013)Article MrsGinaRinehart, “Greetingsfromtheluckycountry(?)” . http://www.andev-project.org/resources/article-mrsgina-rinehart-greetings-from-the-lucky-country-australian-resources-and-investment/. Accessed3Sept2017

5.5GovernanceBarriers107 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

BerkleyGE(1973)Britain’snewtownblues.NatlCivicRev62(9):479–485

BlaineyG(2010)Thetyrannyofdistance:howdistanceshapedAustralia’shistory.Pan MacmillanAustralia,Sydney

BohnetIC,PertPL(2010)Patterns,driversandimpactsofurbangrowth astudyfromCairns, Queensland,Australiafrom1952to2031.LandscapeUrbanPlan97(4):239–248

BolleterJ,WellerR(2013)MadeinAustralia:thefutureofAustraliancities.Universityof WesternAustraliaPublishing,Perth

CarsonD(2010)WhichwaytoWeddell?DemographicchallengesforDarwin’snewsatellitecity. CharlesDarwinUniversity,Darwin

CarsonD,SchmalleggerD,HarwoodS(2010)Acityforthetemporary?Politicaleconomyand urbanplanninginDarwin,Australia.UrbanPolicyRes28(3):293–310 CommissionCities(1973)ReporttotheAustralianGovernment:arecommendedNewCities ProgrammeforthePeriod1973–1978.AustralianGovernmentPublications,Canberra CityofDarwin(2012)EvolvingDarwintowards2020:strategicplan.CityofDarwin,Darwin CommonwealthScientificandIndustrialResearchOrganisation(2017)DataAccessPortal. AustralianGovernment. https://data.csiro.au/dap/home?execution=e2s1 .Accessed15Dec 2017

CooperJAG,LemckertC(2012)Extremesea-levelriseandadaptationoptionsforcoastalresort cities:aqualitativeassessmentfromtheGoldCoast,Australia.OceanCoastManag64:1–14 DaleA(2014)Beyondthenorth-southculturewars:reconcilingNorthernAustralia’srecentpast withitsfuture.Springer,NewYork

DaleA,CampbellA,DouglasM,RobertsonA,WallaceR(2014)Frommythtoreality:new pathwaysfornortherndevelopment.In:RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(eds)Northern development:creatingthefutureAustralia.ADCForum,Melbourne DaleyP(2016)Transformingthebush:athomeonthefarm,withrobots.GriffithRev52:269 DavieM(2000)Movinginandmovingon.TheSpectator40 DepartmentofthePrimeMinisterandCabinet(2017)Smartcitiesplan.AustralianGovernment. https://cities.dpmc.gov.au/ .Accessed24Nov2017

DurantonG,PugaD(2013)Agglomeration,clusters,andindustrialpolicy.OxfordRevEcon Policy29(2):383–404

FitzpatrickJF,JianZ(2016)UsingChina’sexperiencetospeculateuponthefuturepossibilityof specialEconomicZones(SEZS)withintheplanneddevelopmentofnorthernAustralia. FlindersLJ18:29

FloridaR(2002)Riseofthecreativeclass.BasicBooks,NewYork FredericksB(2013) ‘Wedon’tleaveouridentitiesatthecitylimits’:AboriginalandTorresStrait Islanderpeoplelivinginurbanlocalities.AustAboriginalStud1:4

FreestoneR(2014)ProgressinAustralianplanninghistory:traditions,themesandtransformations.ProgPlan91:1–29

FreestoneR,NicholsD,WalkerP(2016)Towardsthecitiesofthe21stcentury.Paperpresentedat theAustralianHousingAssociation,Ballarat,28.07

FreimanC(2013)Cosmopolitanismwithinborders:onbehalfofchartercities.JApplPhilos30 (1):40–52

GanterR(2005)Turningthemapupsidedown.GriffithRev9:167

GleesonB(2010)Lifeboatcities.UNSWPress,Sydney GussenB(2017a)Canchartercities ‘anabolise’ theAustralianFederation?PublicAdministration andPolicy20(1):18–38

GussenB(2017b)AproposalforaSingaporean ‘chartercity’ inAustralia.TheStraitsTimes. AproposalforaSingaporean ‘chartercity’ inAustralia.Accessed1Aug2017

HamnettS(1997)Themulti-functionpolis1987–1997.AustPlanner34(4):227–232

HaratsisBP(2010)Australia2050:bigAustralia?.DigitalPrintAustralia,Adelaide HartcherP(2012)It’seitheranopendoororriskofwar.TheSydneymorningHerald. http://www. smh.com.au/federal-politics/political-opinion/its-either-an-open-door-or-risk-of-war20120604-1zs1g.html.Accessed31Aug2017

1085BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

HeadL(1999)Thenorthernmythrevisited?Aborigines,environmentandagricultureintheOrd RiverIrrigationScheme,stagesoneandtwo.AustGeogr30(2):141–158

HugoG(2012)Populationdistribution,migrationandclimatechangeinAustralia:anexploration. UrbanManagTranspSocIncl1–101

HyndmanB(2015)TheheatinnorthernAustralianclassroomscouldimpedelearning.The Conversation. http://theconversation.com/the-heat-in-northern-australian-classrooms-couldimpede-learning-44592 .Accessed13Feb2018

JonesROY,TontsM(2003)Transitionanddiversityinruralhousingprovision:Thecaseof Narrogin,WesternAustralia.AustGeogr34(1):47–59

LaneM(2017)Exploringshort-termandlong-termtimeframesinAustralianpopulationcarrying capacityassessment.PopulEnviron38(3):309–324

LangfieldM(2001)PeoplingoftheNorthernTerritorypart2:thewhiteelephantlaidtorest? J.NorthernTerritoryHist12:17–26

ListerM(2014)Climatechangerefugees.CritRevIntSocPolitPhilos17(5):618–634

LoboM(2014)Everydaymulticulturalism:catchingthebusinDarwin,Australia.SocCultGeogr 15(7):714–729

Logg-ScarvellJ,NavisR,PatrickK(2015)ScenariosforAustraliain2050:asynthesisand proposedsurvey.J.FuturesStud19(3):49–76

LonsdaleR(1972)Manufacturingdecentralization:thediscouragingrecordinAustralia.Land Econ48(4):321–328

LuckmanS(2011)Tropicalcosmopolitanismandoutdoorfoodmarketsin(post)colonial Australia.Continuum25(5):653–667

MaasW,HackaufU,HaikolaP(eds)(2011)Greendream.howfuturecitiescanoutsmartnature.

TheWhyFactoryNaiPublishers,Amsterdam MaresP(2010)MondaymorninginMernda:alandofplenty,orplentyintheland?GriffithRev 29:ProsperorPerish13–45

McAlpineA(1999)Bagmantoswagman:talesofBroome,thenorthwestandotherAustralian adventures.Allen&Unwin

NixH,MackeyB,TraillB,WoinarskiJ(2013)ThenatureofnorthernAustralia:itsnaturalvalues, ecologicalprocessesandfutureprospects.ANUPress,Acton OakleyS(2004)Politicsofrecollection:examiningtheriseandfallofDURDandbettercities throughnarrative.UrbanPolicyRes22(3):299–314

OfficeofNorthernAustralia(2017)Ournorth,ourfuture:developingnorthernAustralia2017 implementationreport.OfficeofNorthernAustralia,Darwin PearsonDM,GormanJT(2010)ManagingthelandscapesoftheAustralianNorthernTerritoryfor sustainability:visions,issuesandstrategiesforsuccessfulplanning.Futures42(7):711–722 PorterL(2017)IndigenouspeopleandthemiserablefailureofAustralianplanning.PlanPractRes 1–15

QueenslandGovernment(2009)FarNorthQueenslandregionalplan2009–2031:planningfora stronger,moreliveableandsustainablecommunity.QueenslandGovernment,Queensland RaupachM,McMichaelA,AlfordK,FultonE,FinniganJ,GriggN,LevesF,MandersonL, WalkerB(2012)LivingscenariosforAustraliaasanadaptivesystem.In:RaupachM, McMichaelA,FinniganJ,MandersonL,WalkerB(eds)Negotiatingourfuture:living scenariosforAustraliato2050.AustralianAcademyofScience,Canberra,pp1–53 RegionalAustraliaInstitute(2013)RethinkingthefutureofnorthernAustralia’sregions:more thanmines,damsanddevelopmentdreams.RegionalAustraliaInstitute,Canberra RinehartG(2012)NorthernAustraliaandthensome:changesweneedtomakeourcountryrich. ExecutiveMedia,Melbourne RomerP(2014)OpportunitiesforpopulationgrowthtodrivedevelopmentofAustralia’snorth.In: RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD(eds)Northerndevelopment:creatingthefutureAustralia. ADCForum,Melbourne SaltB(2011)Thebigtilt.HardieGrantBooks,Melbourne

References 109 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

SherwoodSC,HuberM(2010)Anadaptabilitylimittoclimatechangeduetoheatstress.Proc NatlAcadSci107(21):9552–9555

TerzonE(2016)DevelopingDarwin.ABCNews. http://www.abc.net.au/news/2016-08-25/howwill-next-nt-government-develop-darwin/7749102 .Accessed18Jan2018

TownsvilleCityCouncil(2017)PlanningtogetherforTownsville’sfuture.TownsvilleCity Council,Townsville

TurnerG,ForanB(2008)Resourceconsumptionandresourcedepletion.CSIROPublishingand Dordrecht:Springer,Melbourne

UnknownAuthor(2012)65PaulRomer:fordreamingbigabouthowtoreinventcities.Foreign Policy197:91

WannaJ(1982)Urbanplanningundersocialdemocracy thecaseofMonarto,SouthAustralia. AustQ54(3):260–270

WuJ,WinchesterHP(2015)Globalisationandborderdynamics:impactsontheurban developmentofDarwin,Australia.AustGeogr46(2):255–270

1105BarrierstoNewNorthernCities julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Chapter6

RelearningLessons

Abstract Thischaptersummarizesthebarrierstoneworboostedcitybuilding experiencedfromFederation(1901)untiltoday.Thechapterconcludesthat,asa nation,wehavefailedtolearnanumberofthekeylessonsofhistory.Weseemto haveforgottenthelimitsthatnatureimposes,particularlyinreferencetopopulation carryingcapacity.Wehavediscountedtheeffectthetyrannyofdistanceandother psychologicalhurdlesthatwewouldhavetoovercomeifweweretoexpect Australiansrelocateenmassetonewregionalorremoteareas.Thisisworrying,as Australia’spopulationisprojectedsurgethiscentury.Withoutestablishingnewor boostedcities,populationgrowthwillcontinuetobeconcentratedinourstate capitalswhichintimewillbecomemegacities andassuchtheirlivabilitywillbe diminished.

Keywords Australia Newcities Boostedcities Populationgrowth Megacities

6.1ASummationoftheBarriers

aftertwocenturieswestillseemtobestrugglingtosettleAustralia.Wehaven’tresolved the firstvexingquestionspresentedtousbyauniquecontinent – theoriginalowners,the fragileland,thescarceresources,thecapriciousclimate,remotenessandtheinsecurities thisgenerates(SteveDoversinGleeson 2006, 2010).

Areviewofthenewandboostedcityproposalsfeaturedinthisbookrevealsthat manyoftheenvironmental,economic,societal,cultural,andgovernancebarriers thathaveconfrontedtheschemeshaveremainedrelativelyconsistentbetweenthe earlytwentiethandearlytwenty- firstcenturyperiods andinmanycasesthe lessonsthesebarriersentailhavenotbeenheeded.

Fromanenvironmentalperspective,themostimportantenduringlessonistobe respectfulofnature’slimits,particularlywithrespecttohumancarryingcapacity. WeshouldverywaryoftheunderlyingattitudeinAustraliathatwehavean

© TheAuthor(s)2018

J.Bolleter, TheGhostCitiesofAustralia,SpringerBriefsinGeography, https://doi.org/10.1007/978-3-319-89896-4_6

111 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

obligationto fillupourhuge, “underpopulated,” openspacesregardlessoftheir aridityandlimitedcapacity(Robert 1976).Thisappliestothe mid-twentieth-centuryproposalsthatemergedoutofanattempttocreatearural civilization,aswellthecontemporaryneworboostedcityproposalsfornorthern Australia aregionwherethecarryingcapacityofthelandhasalreadybeenlargely outstrippedbytheexisting “meager” populations.Ofcourse,thereissomepotential todecouplecontemporaryneworboostedcitiesfromtheconstraintsoftheirsites; however,thiswouldrequiresubstantialexpenseand,assuch,countsagainstthe economicfeasibilityofthesecities.

Fromaninfrastructural(andeconomic)perspective,manyoftheneworboosted cityproposalsfailtoovercomethetyrannyofdistance,whichhasbeenadominant driverthathasshapedAustralia’ssettlementpatternssinceEuropeancolonization. Whilethescaleandtechnologydiffered,EdwardBrady’sfailedvisionofa decentralizedsettlementpatternsupportedbyexpandednetworksofairtransport resonateswithLordMcAlpine’s1980s’ thwartedvisionofBroomewithaninternationalairportbustlingwithJapanesetourists,andindeedBernardSalt’svisionof Broomeasa “weekender” forwealthyChinesetourists.Theambitionbetweenthese schemesremainssimilar,evenifthescaleandtechnologydiffer.

Relatedtothetyrannyofdistancearethepsychologicalhurdlestoruraland remotelivingthathamperedtheattemptstopopulationdecentralizationin1901–1945and1970–1975.IonIdriess’ plantodecentralizepopulationtonewcities aroundapermanentLakeEyreresonateswithEcoscape’scontemporaryplanto buildanewcityonLakeArgyleintheremoteandruggedKimberleyregion (KaesehageninBolleteretal. 2014).Whilethelandscapeandclimatediffer,the achingsenseoflonelinessandisolationthatanewresidentmayfeelcouldbe similar.

Oneofthemostconsistentbarrierstopopulationdecentralizationtonewor boostedcitieshasbeenthecontinuedlivabilityofAustralia’scapitalcities.Inthe latenineteenthcentury,commentatorswarnedthatthecapitalcitieswerean unhealthycocktailofovercrowding,decadence,disease,vice,andpoverty.Again inthe1970s,expertsbelievedthatthecapitalcitieswerefacinganurbancrisisdue toanoverconcentrationofpeopleandpathology,congestion,andsocietalsegregation yetagaintheseassessmentswereoverthetop.Yetevennow,Australian capitalcitiesremainthedominantlifestylechoiceforAustraliansdespitethe pressuresthathavecometobearonthemintheearlytwenty-firstcentury.

Withthisinmind,proponentsofcontemporaryneworboostedcitiesthatrelyon siphoningpopulationsawayfromlivablecapitalcitiesshouldbecautious. Identifyingthetippingpointatwhichpeoplebecomerelievedtoescapecapitalcity livingforlifeinaruraltownisnotoriouslydifficult.Moreover,ourassessmentsthat thistippingpointhasarrivedhavegenerallybeenpremature,astheDepartmentof UrbanandRegionalDevelopment(DURD)experiencefromthe1970sexemplifies.

Thedominantcapitalcitiesarealsowherethejobsare.Manyofthenewcity proposalsscopedinthisbookarebereftofacompellingeconomicdriverand,as such,jobs.Inturn,withoutjobs,neworboostedcityproposalsareultimately unviable,regardlessofwhateverelsetheymayoffer.Thisisparticularlythecase

1126RelearningLessons julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

6.1ASummationoftheBarriers113

wherenewcitiesarecompetingwithexistingcitieswhereagglomerationeconomies andhumancapitalarealreadywellestablishedandareamajordriverinproducing continuedeconomicgrowth.Anestimated80%ofAustralia’seconomicactivity occursinjust0.2%ofAustralia’slandmass namelythecentralbusinessdistricts ofthemajorcapitalcities(KellyandDonegan 2015).Thedecentralizationofjobs fromthese “criticallyimportant” districtstosuburbancenters,letalonenewcities, hasproventobeextremelydiffi cult evenwhenconfrontedbya “onceinalifetime” economicboomsuchasthatexperiencedinthePilbara.

WhiletheexistingcapitalcitiesarewhereAustralia’seconomicgruntisgenerated,thesecitiesarealsowherethevotesare.Theproblemfornewcity visionariesisthatnewcitiesaregenerallynotamajorvote-winningpolicyfor politicians.Putsimply,voterswholiveinexistingcitieswillvoteforimprovements intheirownbackyardbeforesigninguptofundnewcitieshackedoutofthe wildernessinnorthernAustraliaorelsewhere.Thosewhomightbenefitfrom constructionofnewcitiescannotevenbeidenti fiedbecause,attheplanningstage, thesecitiesareobviouslyyettobeoccupied.Inshort,therestructuringthatis necessarytoachievenewcitiesisbestsuitedtothemethodsofadictator,butin Australia,ithastobedeliveredthroughthedemocraticprocess(Llewellyn-Smith 1970).Thissituationwasamajorimpedimenttotheneworboostedcityproposals advancedbytheDURDinthe1970sandwouldequallyapplytoAustralia’s NorthernEcoCity(forinstance)in2018.

Alackofelectoralsupportfornewcitybuildingmeansthatitisverydifficultfor theAustralianGovernmenttoharnesstherequiredenergyandinvestmentto establishalong-term “AustraliaPlan” (2010)withbipartisansupport.Withoutsuch aplan,thepopulatingofisolatednewcitiessuchasGalt’sGulchLitewillbe difficult,ifnotimpossible,intheabsenceofavastinfluxofimmigrants.Whilein historicalterms,Australianpublicacceptanceofmassimmigrationhasbeencontingentonnation-buildingaspirations,itisunclearwhethertheAustraliapublic wouldacceptthebuildingofcompletelynewcitieslargelyfor,andfundedby, “foreigners.” Assuch,politicianswouldhaveadifficulttimesellingschemessuch asRefugeCityandDilgatoawaryandsometimesxenophobicelectorate.

6.2TheNeedforaVision

AreadermightwonderwhyIhaveevenbotheredwritingabookaboutAustralian newcitiesgiventhecomplexarrayofbarrierstheyface.Theanswerisbecausethe lessonsresultingfromahistoryoffailedattemptsarevaluable,muchliketheblack boxesofcrashedairplanesarevaluabletoanaeronauticalengineer.Likeitornot,if projectionsforAustralia’spopulationtotrebleto70,100,000by21011 (Australian

1Theseare “seriesA” projectionsandarethehighestofthethreesetsofprojectionstheAustralian BureauofStatisticsproduces.

julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

BureauofStatistics 2013)areborneout,wewillhaveverylittlechoicebuttobuild neworboostedcities.Indeed,unlessAustraliansbecomenewcitybuilders,once againpopulationgrowthwillcompoundinourcapitalcitiesandtheywillslideinto beingmegacitieswithapopulationof10,000,000ormore withtheattendant livabilityissuesofmegacitiessuchascongestion,lackofhousingaffordability, pollution,decliningaccesstonature amongothers(BolleterandWeller 2013).Of course,wecouldgodownthispath,andplentyofcountrieshave.However,itismy beliefthatcomprisingthelivabilityofourcapitalcitiesinthiswaywillservenone ofourinterestswell.

Thisbookhasbeenlargelyconcernedwiththebarriersconfrontingnewor boostedcitiesinAustralia.However,thereisalsoaneedforavisionfornewor boostedcitiesinAustralia,which,beyondavoidingorneutralizingbarriers,actually aspirestothesocio-ecologicalenrichmentofAustraliansociety.Inthisrespect, thereisacurrentlackofavisionfrompoliticians,professionalleaders,andthe community.

Fromabroaderhistoricalperspective,the “city” haslongheldaspecialaffi nity with “utopia,” evidenceofwhichisthatutopiasfromPlatotoBellamyhavebeen visualizedlargelyintermsofthecity(Ellem 2014).Significantly,mostofthenew citiescountenancedinthisbookhavebeenaboutavoidingdystopias often expressedintheimageofanovercrowded,congested,polluted,andmorallyand physicallyunhealthycapitalcity.Theissuewiththisresignation,whichreflectsa prevailingAustralianpragmatism,isthat “withoutavisionofutopiathereisnoway todefi nethatporttowhichwemightwanttosail” (Harvey 2002).

Theneoliberalcitypropositions,suchasRomer ’schartercity,whilenodoubt havingtheirplace,seemtoharkbacktoMargaretThatcher ’sfamousphrase: “There isnoalternative.” Yet,therearealternatives.Australiahasthegovernancesystems andtheeconomicmighttobuildacitynotdefinedbysingularlypragmaticmotives onethataspirestocreatingasocio-ecologicallyenrichingAustraliancity.The followingsectionisasketchofthisvisionandisnotthevisionitself,thisbeing somethingthatwouldrequiretheexpertiseofstateandfederalgovernment departments,engineers,economists,planners,statisticians,sociologistsamong others.

6.2.1ListentotheLand,ListentothePeople

De finingsuchasocio-ecologicallyenrichingcitywouldbeadeeperengagement withthe “land.” Thiscouldmeanthatthecityislocatedwhereasystematicanalysis tellsusthatcarryingcapacityofthelandishighest.Wherecarryingcapacityis limited,planningshouldaimtoproduceamodestsettlementthatisstableand sustainable,ratherthanagrandiosecitythatisunstableandunsustainable.Moreover, thenewcitycouldbedesignedinsuchawaythatthenaturalsystemsofthecity’s landscapeinformthestructuringprinciplesforthecity inshort,thelandscape

1146RelearningLessons julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

becomesatemplateforthecity’surbanism2 (Weller 2006).Ofcourse,inpractice,it isextremelyhardtoreconcileecologicalsystemswithurbansystems;however,a deeperengagementwithindigenousAustralianswouldsubstantiallyaidthisprocess. Inthisrespect,incorporatingindigenouslandmanagers(andtheirintimateknowledgeoftheland)intoplanningmustoccurfromtheconceptualoutset.

Suchacitymustalsoyieldsubstantialbenefi tsforindigenouspopulations. Whereneworboostedcitiesintersectwithlandwithrecognizednativetitle determinations,therearepotentialleaseholdmodelssimilartothatEbenezer Howardproposedforhisgardencities,whichcouldallowindigenousgroupsto maintainlong-termownershipofurbanlandandgenerateincomefromit.Canberra embodiesasimilarsystem,withalllandleasedto “owners” asa99-yearCrown lease(CitiesCommission 1973).

Theproponentsofsuchacityshouldbecarefultolistentothe “realpeople” of existingcitiesandtownstounderstandtheir “needs,wants,capabilitiesandfears,” ratherthanfallingtoatrapoffocusingontheabstractdataofpopulationprojections andmigration.Thecourseoftryingtooverridetheveryrealpreferencesofpeople astowhereandhowtheywanttolivewillonlywastealotoftheplanners’ time, andgovernmentmoney.Atthesametime,proponentsshouldtalktothepeople whoownbusinessesandsuchcouldbringemploymentopportunitiestosuchanew city.Withoutjobs,anewcityisnotviable,sotheseconversationsarecrucial. Throughthisbetterunderstandingoftheneedsofrealpeople,proponentswillbe abletopredictwhenthetippingpointfororganicratherthandirecteddecentralizationfromthecapitalcitiesmayoccur.Thiscouldhelptoavoidarepeatofthe situationinwhich “theexperts” haveworkedthemselvesintopanicaboutthe problemsofexistingcities(andtheneedfordecentralization)buttheurbanpopulaceislargelyoblivious,andindeedquite “athome.”

Moreover,thisapproachwouldinvolvetalkingtopeopleintheregionsabout buildingtheendemiccapacityandresilienceofregionalcommunitiesandusingthis asabasepointfordiscussinghowthesecommunitiescouldgrowovertime.This wouldbepreferabletoatop-downapproachthatseekstosolvebigcityproblems by “evicting” peopletotheregions.

Finally,suchacityshouldembodyadeeperengagementwithAsiaratherthan seeingthevalueofourAsianneighborsonlyintermsofpotentialinvestment.If Australiaistrulytobepartofthe “AsianCentury,” werequiremorethaneconomic engagement.Wemustbepreparedtolearn,culturally,fromthedynamismand diversetraditionsofAsianpeople(Southphommasane 2012)andembedthese learningsintofutureAustraliancities.AdeeperengagementwithAsiaalsoimplies oursharedresponsibilityforthepotentiallyhugenumbersofAsianclimatechange refugeesinthiscentury.Suchacitymustbehumanitarianinthatitshouldprovide torefugees whoaremorethanastatistic thefullbenefitsofAustraliansociety.

2TheGriffith’sdesignforCanberra,whichemployedlandscapetoinformcitystructure,provides somecluesinthisrespect.

6.2TheNeedforaVision115 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

Thisprocessofengagementwiththelandanditspeoplewilltaketime.Itwill havetobedonedemocratically,andthatmeanswith “lotsoftalk,lotsoffrustration, fullofcompromises,andveryslowly…” (Aitken 1970). Whichisasitshouldbe.

6.3Conclusion

Thisbookhascountenancedthebroadsweepofnewandboostedcityproposalsin Australia,siftedthroughtheir “remains” andattemptedtodivinewhatthekey lessonstheyholdforfutureneworboostedcityproponentsmightbe.Despitethe challengestheimplementationofthesecitiesposed,ifprojectionsforAustralia’s populationgrowthareborneout,Australiawillagainneedtobuildnewcitiesthis century.AsGoughWhitlamsaid, “Buildingcitiesisfarthemostdifficult,complex andmajesticthingthat[people]do.InthiswecomenearestinscaletowhatGod doesincreatingthestarsandthehillsandtheforests” (Pennay 2005).Indeed, Australian’swillbecome “gods” again,ifperhapsonlyoutofnecessity.Thisbook aimstoensurethat,whenthetimecomes,wehavelearntfromourmistakesandare notdoomedtorepeatthem.

References

AitkenV(1970)ThepoliticallikelihoodofnewtownsinAustralia.In:GoldsmithJ,ConnerJ (eds)Towardcitiesofthetwenty-firstcentury:CanberraForum1970Proceedings,Canberra, 23May1970.TheRoyalAustralianInstituteofArchitects,TheRoyalPlanningInstitute AustralianBureauofStatistics(2013)PopulationProjections,Australia,2012to2101.AustralianBureau ofStatistics. http://www.abs.gov.au/ausstats/abs@.nsf/Lookup/3222.0main+features52012%20 (base)%20to%202101.Accessed3Jan2013

BolleterJ,WellerR(2013)MadeinAustralia:thefutureofAustraliancities.Universityof WesternAustraliaPublishing,Perth

BolleterJ,KaesehagenD,SingletonD,RomerP(2014)Settlementpatterns:effectivemodelsfor managingagrowingpopulationinnorthernAustralia.In:RouxA,FaubellM,McGauchieD (eds)Northerndevelopment:creatingthefutureAustralia.ADCForum,Melbourne CitiesCommission(1973)ReporttotheAustralianGovernment:arecommendednewcities programmefortheperiod1973–1978.AustralianGovernmentPublications,Canberra EllemC(2014)Nolittleplans:Canberra,ViaChicago,WashingtonDC,ThePhilippines,and onwards.ThesisEleven123(1):106–122

GleesonB(2006)Wakingfromthedream:towardsurbanresilienceinthefaceofsuddenthreat. GriffithUniversityUrbanResearchProgram

GleesonB(2010)Lifeboatcities.UNSWPress,Sydney HarveyD(2002)Spacesofhope.CromwellPress,Edinburgh KellyJ-F,DoneganP(2015)Citylimits:whyAustraliancitiesarebrokenandhowwecan fix them.MelbourneUniversityPress,Melbourne Llewellyn-SmithM(1970)Canberraforum1970 towardsthecitiesofthe21stCentury.RAust PlanInstJ8(3):86–87

1166RelearningLessons julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au

PennayB(2005)Makingacityinthecountry:theAlbury-WodongaNationalGrowthCentre Project1973–2003.UNSWPress

RobertB(1976)Growthcentresnow?In:DevelopmentACfB(ed)Nationalsymposium, Canberra.AustralianCouncilforBalancedDevelopment

SouthphommasaneT(2012)Dontgobacktowhereyoucamefrom:whymulticulturalismworks. Newsouth,Sydney

WellerR(2006)Globaltheory,localpractice.Kerb15:66–71

References 117 julian.bolleter@uwa.edu.au
Issuu converts static files into: digital portfolios, online yearbooks, online catalogs, digital photo albums and more. Sign up and create your flipbook.